Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 15,184 5 9.5685 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13170 A ful and round ansvver to N.D. alias Robert Parsons the noddie his foolish and rude Warne-word comprised in three bookes, whereof, the first containeth a defence of Queene Elizabeths most pious and happie gouernment, by him maliciously slaundered. The second discouereth the miserable estate of papists, vnder the Popes irreligious and vnhappy tyrannie, by him weakely defended. The third, toucheth him for his vnciuill termes and behauior, and diuers other exorbitant faults and abuses, both here and elsewhere by him committed, and cleareth his vaine obiections and cauils. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. 1604 (1604) STC 23465; ESTC S117978 279,569 402

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n then_o the_o papist_n believe_v scripture_n with_o humane_a faith_n and_o depend_v upon_o man_n but_o that_o they_o do_v plain_o teach_v three_o if_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o consign_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n then_o if_o the_o pope_n either_o determine_v against_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o make_v fabulous_a scripture_n equal_a with_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o papist_n be_v to_o believe_v either_o doctrine_n contrary_a or_o diverse_a from_o scripture_n at_o the_o least_o they_o be_v uncertain_a what_o they_o shall_v believe_v but_o the_o pope_n may_v both_o err_v in_o deny_v scripture_n and_o add_v to_o scripture_n to_o answer_v this_o the_o papist_n be_v drive_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o these_o determination_n but_o this_o show_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o depend_v upon_o one_o little_a rot_a gouty_a pope_n who_o learning_n be_v not_o worth_a two_o chip_n and_o who_o piety_n be_v less_o than_o his_o learning_n four_o if_o the_o pope_n consignation_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v papist_n believe_v scripture_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n most_o uncertain_a and_o rather_o humane_a then_o divine_a especial_o consider_v that_o of_o this_o pope_n consignation_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o scripture_n but_o that_o be_v their_o doctrine_n five_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o romish_a faith_n must_v needs_o prove_v uncertain_a and_o variable_a the_o consequence_n of_o this_o proposition_n be_v prove_v for_o that_o both_o schoolman_n differ_v from_o schoolman_n and_o late_a writer_n from_o the_o ancient_a and_o also_o pope_n from_o pope_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontiff_a rom._n that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v it_o may_v be_v aver_v by_o stapletons_n word_n six_o if_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o tradition_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o scripture_n then_o have_v the_o papist_n no_n certain_a faith_n the_o consequence_n be_v plain_a for_o that_o diverse_a ancient_a tradition_n be_v new_a cease_v and_o neither_o caesar_n baronius_n nor_o any_o man_n be_v able_a to_o set_v down_o which_o be_v authentical_a tradition_n which_o not_o final_o if_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n rest_v upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n or_o else_o upon_o the_o suppose_a catholic_a church_n decree_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n a_o gouty_a frail_a and_o rot_a faith_n or_o rather_o a_o most_o doubtful_a opinion_n for_o neither_o be_v they_o certain_a who_o be_v lawful_a pope_n nor_o that_o his_o determination_n be_v unfallible_a nor_o be_v it_o a_o easy_a matter_n to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n determination_n the_o papist_n themselves_o contend_v and_o vary_v continual_o about_o they_o these_o argument_n do_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v either_o a_o vain_a faith_n or_o else_o no_o faith_n at_o all_o and_o this_o robert_n parson_n notwithstanding_o his_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n must_v needs_o confess_v for_o simple_a papist_n have_v only_o these_o mean_n whereby_o to_o direct_v themselves_o viz._n scripture_n father_n or_o their_o own_o priest_n scripture_n they_o neither_o hear_v read_v in_o a_o tongue_n know_v nor_o do_v they_o much_o regard_v they_o the_o father_n they_o understand_v not_o the_o priest_n do_v often_o tell_v lie_n and_o too_o far_o they_o dwell_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o know_v of_o he_o the_o truth_n to_o omit_v to_o talk_v of_o rude_a person_n and_o to_o talk_v of_o spruce_a robert_n parson_n glad_o will_v i_o know_v of_o he_o how_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o religion_n he_o teach_v be_v true_a scripture_n he_o deni_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v authentical_a without_o the_o pope_n determination_n the_o pope_n be_v but_o one_o man_n if_o then_o he_o rely_v whole_o on_o the_o pope_n determination_n his_o faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o foolish_a fancy_n ground_v upon_o one_o man_n if_o upon_o the_o church_n yet_o he_o know_v not_o the_o church_n but_o by_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o sense_n as_o i_o think_v he_o will_v confess_v 6._o ward-word_n pag._n 6._o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o acknowledge_v none_o but_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v not_o only_o absurd_a but_o make_v much_o against_o he_o absurd_a it_o be_v for_o that_o the_o church_n be_v rule_v and_o be_v not_o the_o rule_n no_o more_o than_o the_o carpenter_n be_v his_o rule_n it_o make_v against_o he_o for_o that_o it_o be_v more_o difficult_a to_o know_v the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n and_o place_n than_o scripture_n or_o any_o proof_n of_o faith_n else_o for_o to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v well_o see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o all_o time_n church_n and_o country_n and_o if_o he_o refer_v himself_o to_o other_o and_o believe_v humane_a history_n his_o faith_n be_v still_o ground_v on_o man_n this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o papist_n and_o of_o their_o agent_n robert_n parson_n we_o may_v esteem_v ourselves_o happy_a that_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o great_a uncertainty_n and_o teach_v to_o build_v our_o faith_n upon_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o eph._n 2._o you_o be_v build_v say_v he_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n we_o know_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v 10._o rom._n 10._o and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n and_o therefore_o right_o call_v canonical_a the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 2._o cor._n 10._o gal._n 6._o and_o phil._n 3._o mean_v no_o other_o rule_n but_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n the_o father_n also_o proceed_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n both_o where_o they_o seek_v direction_n for_o themselves_o and_o also_o where_o they_o bring_v argument_n against_o heretic_n ireney_n lib._n advers_a haeres_fw-la cap._n 1._o call_v the_o gospel_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n tertul._n write_v against_o hermogenes_n say_v he_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o why_o inter_fw-la scripturas_fw-la enim_fw-la dei_fw-la colores_fw-la suos_fw-la invenire_fw-la non_fw-la potuerat_fw-la he_o can_v not_o find_v his_o colour_n or_o fancy_n in_o scripture_n athan._n say_v orat._n 2._o contr_n arian_n that_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v stone_v with_o argument_n out_o of_o scripture_n out_o of_o scripture_n the_o arian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o other_o heretic_n in_o other_o synod_n be_v confute_v and_o general_o antiquity_n do_v call_v scripture_n the_o canon_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n agréeable_o therefore_o to_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n acknowledge_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o thence_o take_v the_o article_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o i_o call_v scripture_n and_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n not_o separate_v the_o rule_n from_o scripture_n as_o parson_n 1._o encontr_n cap._n 15._o of_o his_o warn-word_n do_v cavil_n but_o in_o the_o rule_n comprehend_v whatsoever_o be_v either_o express_v in_o term_n or_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o this_o i_o do_v to_o avoid_v the_o cavil_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o infer_v because_o this_o word_n trinity_n or_o consubstantial_a or_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n that_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o solid_a and_o entire_a rule_n of_o faith_n against_o this_o parson_n in_o his_o warn-word_n 1._o encontr_n c._n 15._o allege_v first_o certain_a name_n of_o father_n then_o certain_a word_n out_o of_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la phil._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o &_o 4._o adversus_fw-la haeres_fw-la tertullian_n de_fw-fr prescript_n adversus_fw-la heretic_n and_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n but_o he_o spend_v his_o labour_n in_o vain_a and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n 4._o lib._n 3._o advers_a haerel_n cap._n 4._o for_o none_o of_o these_o father_n speak_v of_o other_o matter_n than_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o the_o place_n themselves_o show_v ireney_n by_o tradition_n prove_v god_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n his_o incarnation_n but_o parson_n will_v not_o deny_v this_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr
prescript_n advers_a haeret._n dispute_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o and_o marcionite_n draw_v argument_n from_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o tradition_n but_o that_o be_v because_o they_o deny_v and_o corrupt_a scripture_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o their_o heresy_n be_v clear_o convince_v by_o scripture_n quod_fw-la sumus_fw-la hoc_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o we_o be_v that_o they_o be_v say_v tertullian_n speak_v of_o scripture_n that_o be_v likewise_o the_o meaning_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la cap._n 27._o for_o that_o depost_n of_o which_o he_o talk_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o christian_a faith_n contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o if_o parson_n will_v prove_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o must_v show_v a_o faith_n ground_v upon_o tradition_n that_o be_v not_o deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n nay_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o he_o must_v show_v that_o not_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n as_o he_o say_v in_o his_o warn-word_n 1._o encoun_n cap._n 15._o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o hold_v ward-word_n encontr_n pag._n 6._o he_o do_v also_o object_n against_o we_o diverse_a alteration_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o reign_n 16._o warn-word_n encontr_n c._n 16._o and_o in_o king_n edward_n day_n and_o then_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n our_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v establish_v but_o first_o he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o alteration_n make_v in_o q._n mary_n day_n when_o the_o impiety_n of_o popish_a religion_n be_v establish_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n second_o the_o alteration_n in_o religion_n make_v in_o england_n of_o late_a time_n make_v no_o variation_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v always_o one_o but_o in_o the_o application_n and_o use_n of_o it_o three_o albeit_o by_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o article_n of_o religion_n be_v confirm_v wherein_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o confession_n be_v set_v down_o yet_o be_v that_o rather_o a_o declaration_n of_o our_o acceptance_n than_o a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n that_o in_o itself_o be_v always_o immovable_a our_o rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o be_v certain_a albeit_o not_o always_o in_o one_o sort_n approve_v or_o receive_v by_o man_n but_o the_o rule_n of_o popish_a faith_n neither_o in_o itself_o nor_o in_o the_o approbation_n of_o parliament_n or_o church_n be_v certain_a or_o immovable_a final_o he_o ask_v a_o question_n of_o sir_n francis_n in_o his_o ward-word_n p._n 5._o how_o he_o know_v his_o religion_n to_o be_v true_a and_o say_v he_o have_v only_o two_o mean_n to_o guide_v himself_o in_o this_o case_n and_o that_o be_v either_o scripture_n or_o the_o preach_n of_o our_o minister_n but_o this_o question_n as_o i_o have_v show_v touch_v himself_o that_o buside_v his_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n near_o than_o sir_n francis_n who_o ground_v himself_o &_o his_o faith_n only_o upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o be_v assure_v of_o his_o faith_n not_o by_o these_o two_o mean_n only_o but_o by_o diverse_a other_o for_o beside_o scripture_n he_o have_v the_o help_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n spirit_n work_v within_o he_o of_o miracle_n record_v in_o scripture_n of_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o nation_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n and_o testimony_n of_o learned_a man_n and_o such_o like_a argument_n in_o this_o question_n therefore_o robert_n parson_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o silly_a friar_n and_o to_o have_v have_v more_o malice_n than_o may_v in_o time_n past_o also_o we_o be_v as_o sheep_n go_v astray_o and_o out_o of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n diverse_a of_o our_o ancestor_n worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o divine_a worship_n some_o like_a bruit_n beast_n fall_v down_o before_o idol_n creep_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o kiss_v wood_n and_o stone_n other_o worship_v angel_n the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o saint_n pray_v unto_o they_o in_o all_o their_o necessity_n trust_v in_o they_o say_v mass_n in_o their_o honour_n and_o offer_v incense_n and_o prayer_n to_o their_o picture_n and_o image_n for_o so_o they_o be_v teach_v or_o rather_o mistaught_a by_o popish_a priest_n the_o romish_a synagogue_n in_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o religion_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a church_n the_o schoolman_n bring_v their_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o pope_n decretal_n and_o aristotle_n metaphysic_n est_fw-la petri_n sedes_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n in_o praefat._n ante_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n lapis_fw-la probatus_fw-la angularis_fw-la pretiosus_fw-la in_fw-la fundamento_fw-la fundatus_fw-la the_o see_v of_o peter_n be_v a_o approve_a corner_n stone_n precious_a and_o lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n the_o same_o man_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n cap._n 31._o call_v the_o pope_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n sanders_n call_v he_o the_o rock_n alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la say_v stapleton_n relect_a princip_n doctr_n in_o praef._n eorúmue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la that_o be_v other_o now_o beside_o christ_n and_o their_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o determination_n shall_v be_v esteem_v of_o i_o as_o a_o foundation_n this_o he_o say_v where_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v no_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o gospel_n teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n gal._n 1._o denounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n then_o that_o which_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o holy_a father_n prove_v the_o faith_n by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o by_o popish_a decretal_n and_o philosophical_a principle_n concern_v christ_n body_n the_o romanist_n teach_v that_o the_o same_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n albeit_o we_o neither_o can_v see_v it_o there_o nor_o feel_v it_o but_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o his_o body_n be_v both_o palpable_a and_o visible_a ult._n luk._n 24._o mar._n ult._n and_o be_v now_o take_v up_o into_o heaven_n so_o likewise_o teach_v the_o father_n vigilius_n in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o eutyches_n speak_v of_o christ_n body_n when_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n say_v he_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o now_o because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n certain_o it_o be_v not_o on_o earth_n they_o have_v also_o bring_v in_o new_a doctrine_n concern_v purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n and_o which_o be_v no_o more_o like_a to_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n than_o heresy_n and_o novelty_n to_o christian_a religion_n they_o teach_v that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o satisfy_v in_o this_o life_n for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o mortal_a sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n and_o remit_v concern_v the_o guiltiness_n must_v satisfy_v for_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n unless_o it_o please_v the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n to_o release_v he_o of_o the_o tormentor_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n and_o of_o the_o nature_n quality_n and_o effect_n of_o indulgence_n they_o talk_v idle_o and_o unlike_a to_o the_o scholar_n of_o catholic_n the_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o have_v quite_o change_v in_o baptism_n add_v salt_n spittle_n hallow_a water_n exorcism_n blowing_n annointing_n light_n and_o other_o strange_a ceremony_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communicant_n and_o not_o deliver_v but_o hang_v up_o or_o carry_v about_o the_o sacrament_n and_o worship_v it_o as_o god_n and_o final_o beléeve_v &_o hold_v transubstantiation_n they_o have_v also_o devise_v other_o sacrament_n and_o teach_v that_o they_o contain_v grace_n and_o justify_v they_o be_v wont_a to_o kiss_v the_o pope_n toe_n and_o to_o receive_v his_o dunghill_n decretal_n worship_v antichrist_n and_o intitle_v he_o christ_n vicar_n all_o which_o novelty_n superstition_n and_o heresy_n by_o her_o majesty_n godly_a reformation_n be_v abolish_v who_o have_v restore_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v alter_v &_o suppress_v she_o have_v also_o by_o her_o authority_n bring_v we_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o by_o good_a law_n confirm_v true_a christian_a religion_n before_o our_o time_n there_o be_v no_o settlement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n durand_n deni_v divinity_n to_o be_v scientia_fw-la thomas_n and_o richard_n middleton_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v write_v upon_o the_o
master_n of_o sentence_n 1._o dist_n 1._o lib._n 1._o the_o schoolman_n strive_v about_o the_o word_n uti_fw-la and_o frui_fw-la dissent_v not_o only_a from_o their_o master_n but_o also_o from_o one_o another_o they_o differ_v also_o much_o about_o the_o distinction_n of_o divine_a attribute_n utrum_fw-la sit_fw-la realis_fw-la formalis_fw-la a_o rationis_fw-la tantùm_fw-la this_o say_v dionysius_n a_o charterhouse_n monk_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a difficulty_n of_o divine_n send_v in_o do_v 2._o lib._n 1_o send_v and_o about_o it_o between_o famous_a doctor_n be_v great_a dissension_n and_o contention_n aegidius_n do_v lance_n thomas_n and_o other_o run_v upon_o both_o aegidius_n in_o lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 2._o will_v have_v the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o a_o certain_a thing_n in_o one_o that_o be_v not_o in_o another_o but_o other_o condemn_v he_o for_o that_o opinion_n write_v upon_o the_o 3._o do_v lib._n 1._o send_v they_o deny_v their_o master_n example_n and_o one_o condemn_v another_o bonaventure_n say_v that_o man_n may_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o natural_a reason_n other_o say_v contrary_a the_o scotist_n lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 5._o inveigh_v against_o henricus_fw-la de_fw-la gandavo_fw-la for_o his_o opinion_n about_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n aegidius_n hold_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v power_n to_o beget_v another_o son_n which_o displease_v thomas_n and_o bonaventure_n and_o be_v very_o strange_a doctrine_n thomas_n aquinas_n part_n 1._o q._n 32._o art_n 4._o say_v that_o doctor_n may_v hold_v contrary_a opinion_n circa_n notiones_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la he_o teach_v also_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v more_o principal_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n then_o from_o the_o son_n which_o other_o mislike_v if_o then_o they_o agree_v not_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o in_o matter_n wherein_o they_o have_v liberty_n to_o dissent_v they_o will_v better_o agree_v scotus_n hold_v 1._o in_o 2._o scent_n do_v 1._o that_o the_o soul_n and_o a_o angel_n do_v not_o differ_v as_o two_o diverse_a kind_n other_o teach_v contrary_a some_o doctor_n hold_v that_o angel_n consist_v of_o form_n only_o 3._o in_o 2._o scent_n do_v 3._o other_o hold_v contrary_a they_o dissent_v also_o about_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n pighius_fw-la in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n dissent_v from_o his_o fellow_n innocentius_n in_o c._n maiores_fw-la de_fw-la bapt_v &_o eius_fw-la effect_n mislike_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n that_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v pronitas_fw-la ad_fw-la peccandum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o proneness_n to_o sin_n the_o thomist_n to_o this_o day_n can_v never_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o scotist_n about_o the_o conception_n of_o our_o lady_n these_o deny_v she_o be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n the_o other_o affirm_v it_o gropper_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o créed_a confess_v that_o among_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v two_o diverse_a opinion_n about_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o controversy_n do_v not_o more_o violent_o run_v upon_o we_o then_o upon_o his_o own_o consort_n in_o every_o article_n almost_o he_o bring_v contrary_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o be_v a_o pledge_n of_o love_n there_o be_v infinite_a contradiction_n among_o they_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n the_o like_a contention_n i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o treatise_n de_fw-fr indulgentijs_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la and_o shall_v have_v occasion_n more_o at_o large_a to_o speak_v of_o they_o hereafter_o we_o be_v therefore_o to_o thank_v god_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v settle_v and_o that_o refuse_v all_o novelty_n we_o agree_v therein_o with_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n we_o acknowledge_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n one_o canon_n of_o scripture_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n the_o rule_n of_o all_o ancient_a and_o lawful_a general_a counsel_n concern_v the_o faith_n we_o admit_v we_o have_v one_o uniform_a order_n for_o public_a prayer_n administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o god_n service_n neither_o do_v we_o only_o agree_v among_o ourselves_o but_o also_o with_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n and_o other_o nation_n especial_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o salvation_n and_o as_o for_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o all_o church_n therein_o have_v their_o liberty_n as_o the_o diversity_n of_o ancient_a church_n and_o testimony_n of_o father_n do_v teach_v us._n most_o vain_a therefore_o and_o contumelious_a be_v that_o discourse_n of_o n.d._n in_o his_o warne-word_n 1._o encontr_n ca._n 4_o 5_o &_o 6._o where_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o soft_a and_o rigid_a lutheran_n among_o themselves_o of_o they_o from_o anabaptist_n and_o from_o zwinglian_o of_o all_o from_o the_o follower_n of_o seruetus_fw-la and_o valentine_n gentilis_fw-la for_o neither_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n caluinian_n or_o zwinglians_n but_o only_o call_v ourselves_o christian_n nor_o have_v we_o to_o do_v with_o the_o arian_n or_o anabaptist_n or_o seruetus_fw-la or_o gentilis_fw-la or_o any_o heretic_n nay_o by_o our_o doctor_n these_o fellow_n have_v be_v diligent_o confute_v and_o by_o our_o governor_n the_o principal_a of_o they_o have_v be_v punish_v but_o these_o may_v parson_n reply_n have_v be_v among_o us._n admit_v it_o be_v so_o yet_o do_v not_o our_o adversary_n take_v themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o arianisme_n and_o anabaptisme_n because_o there_o be_v diverse_a guilty_a of_o arianisme_n and_o anabaptisme_n among_o they_o we_o say_v further_o that_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n france_n and_o england_n agree_v albeit_o private_a man_n hold_v private_a opinion_n final_o where_o we_o talk_v of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n what_o a_o ridiculous_a sot_n be_v this_o to_o bring_v a_o instance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o germany_n or_o suizzerland_n nay_o not_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o private_a person_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n not_o very_o substantial_a if_o we_o admit_v their_o own_o interpretation_n have_v therefore_o talk_v his_o pleasure_n of_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n he_o descend_v to_o speak_v of_o rigid_a and_o soft_a caluinist_n as_o he_o call_v they_o in_o england_n he_o call_v they_o also_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n but_o neither_o do_v we_o admit_v these_o name_n of_o faction_n nor_o be_v he_o able_a to_o show_v that_o public_o any_o christian_n be_v tolerate_v to_o dissent_v either_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o rite_n from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o if_o any_o there_o be_v that_o mislike_v our_o rite_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o contention_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o can_v the_o disorder_n of_o private_a person_n hinder_v the_o public_a union_n of_o the_o church_n final_o i_o do_v not_o know_v any_o man_n now_o but_o he_o be_v reasonable_o well_o satisfy_v concern_v matter_n of_o discipline_n albeit_o the_o same_o be_v with_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o papist_n who_o go_v about_o to_o stir_v up_o the_o coal_n of_o contention_n as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v that_o heretofore_o have_v be_v cover_v chap._n ii_o of_o the_o restore_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o true_a faith_n true_a faith_n in_o time_n of_o popery_n be_v a_o great_a stranger_n in_o england_n most_o man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o point_n of_o christian_n religion_n the_o rest_n hold_v diverse_a erroneous_a point_n and_o heresy_n their_o ignorance_n we_o shall_v prove_v by_o diverse_a testimony_n hereafter_o their_o error_n and_o heresy_n be_v very_o apparent_a and_o at_o large_a prove_v in_o my_o late_a challenge_n that_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4._o that_o they_o embrace_v for_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o forbid_v their_o priest_n monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n to_o marry_v and_o command_v the_o benedictines_n and_o their_o charterhouse_n monk_n at_o all_o time_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n they_o also_o forbid_v man_n to_o eat_v flesh_n upon_o all_o fast_a day_n friday_n and_o saturday_n and_o in_o lent_n dissolve_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n by_o their_o own_o tradition_n the_o manicheye_n abstain_v from_o egg_n as_o saint_n augustine_n show_v lib._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la cap._n 46._o nec_fw-la ova_fw-la saltem_fw-la sumunt_fw-la quasi_fw-la &_o ipsa_fw-la cùm_fw-la franguntur_fw-la expirent_fw-la nec_fw-la oporteat_fw-la ullis_fw-la corporibus_fw-la mortuis_fw-la vesci_fw-la 82._o cap._n plurimi_fw-la do_v 82._o so_o likewise_o do_v papist_n at_o certain_a
to_o receive_v into_o our_o house_n 5._o gal._n 5._o or_o to_o salute_v such_o as_o bring_v not_o his_o doctrine_n heresy_n schism_n and_o idolatry_n be_v reckon_v among_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o worker_n whereof_o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n fly_v say_v ignatius_n those_o that_o cause_n heresy_n and_o schism_n smyrnens_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la smyrnens_fw-la as_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o mischief_n quod_fw-la maius_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la delictum_fw-la say_v cyprian_n lib._n 2._o epist_n 11._o aut_fw-la quae_fw-la macula_fw-la deformior_fw-la quàm_fw-la adversus_fw-la christum_fw-la stetisse_fw-la quàm_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la eius_fw-la quàm_fw-la ille_fw-la sanguine_fw-la svo_fw-la paravit_fw-la dissipasse_n what_o offence_n can_v be_v great_a or_o what_o blot_n more_o ugly_a then_o to_o have_v stand_v against_o christ_n then_o to_o have_v scatter_v his_o church_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o blood_n those_o which_o do_v persevere_v in_o discord_n of_o schism_n say_v s._n augustine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt_a contra_fw-la donatist_n c._n 15._o do_v pertain_v to_o the_o lot_n of_o ishmael_n superstition_n be_v the_o corruption_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o although_o colour_a with_o a_o show_n of_o wisdom_n yet_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o apostle_n 21._o lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la divin_v c._n 21._o col._n 2._o lactantius_n speak_v of_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o gentile_n do_v call_v it_o a_o incurable_a madness_n dementiam_fw-la incurabilem_fw-la and_o afterward_o vanity_n 22_o ibid._n c._n 22_o justine_n in_o ser_n exhort_v ad_fw-la gentes_fw-la say_v that_o idolatry_n be_v not_o only_o injurious_a unto_o god_n but_o also_o void_a of_o reason_n principale_n crimen_fw-la generis_fw-la humani_fw-la say_v tertullian_n idolol_n lib._n the_o idolol_n summus_fw-la seculi_fw-la reatus_fw-la tota_fw-la causa_fw-la iudicij_fw-la idololatria_fw-la that_o be_v idolatry_n be_v the_o principal_a crime_n of_o mankind_n the_o chief_a guiltiness_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o whole_a cause_n of_o judgement_n 5._o 1._o joh._n 5._o no_o marvel_n then_o if_o john_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v all_o man_n to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o idol_n this_o sin_n be_v direct_a against_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o else_o but_o spiritual_a fornication_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n may_v not_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o aforesaid_a crime_n of_o teach_v heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o of_o long_a continuance_n in_o schism_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n that_o the_o papist_n teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n the_o act_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n of_o florence_n and_o constance_n compare_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n will_v plain_o declare_v for_o as_o tertullian_n say_v of_o old_a heretic_n so_o may_v we_o say_v of_o they_o that_o their_o doctrine_n compare_v with_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n do_v by_o the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n thereof_o declare_v that_o it_o proceed_v from_o no_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n ipsa_fw-la doctrina_fw-la eorum_fw-la cum_fw-la apostolica_fw-la comparata_fw-la ex_fw-la diversitate_fw-la &_o contrarietate_fw-la sva_fw-la pronunciabit_fw-la neque_fw-la apostoli_fw-la alicuius_fw-la autoris_fw-la esse_fw-la neque_fw-la apostolici_fw-la 3._o de_fw-fr praescrip_n advers_a haeret_fw-la 2._o tim._n 3._o say_v he_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a they_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o very_o imperfect_a without_o tradition_n s._n peter_n 2._o pet._n 1._o compare_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o a_o candle_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n they_o teach_v that_o scripture_n be_v dark_a and_o obscure_a god_n command_v we_o to_o hear_v his_o belove_a son_n mat._n 3._o they_o command_v we_o not_o to_o hear_v christ_n speak_v in_o scripture_n to_o we_o but_o to_o hear_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o cacolike_a crew_n which_o they_o endue_v with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o 1._o cor._n 3._o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v already_o lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n these_o fellow_n say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n although_o we_o find_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o pope_n for_o many_o age_n in_o the_o church_n christ_n say_v read_v the_o scripture_n these_o say_v direct_o to_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n read_v not_o scripture_n in_o vulgar_a tong_n without_o licence_n s._n john_n teach_v we_o that_o sin_n be_v whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n these_o teach_v that_o many_o sin_n there_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o god_n law_n viz._n such_o thing_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n law_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n these_o affirm_v the_o contrary_n he_o say_v original_a sin_n pass_v over_o all_o they_o deny_v it_o he_o say_v no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n they_o teach_v flat_a contrary_n the_o law_n direct_o prohibit_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n to_o the_o end_n to_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o to_o worship_v they_o these_o notwithstanding_o make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n bow_v down_o to_o they_o and_o worship_v they_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o speak_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o angel_n they_o regard_v he_o not_o but_o in_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n invocate_v and_o worship_v angel_n notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n say_v accipite_fw-la manducate_v take_v and_o eat_v and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o they_o say_v sacrifice_n and_o worship_n and_o drink_v not_o all_o of_o this_o to_o rehearse_v all_o their_o contradiction_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v too_o long_o for_o this_o short_a discourse_n let_v these_o therefore_o serve_v for_o a_o introduction_n of_o their_o heresy_n i_o have_v before_o speak_v pius_fw-la the_o four_o have_v set_v forth_o a_o new_a form_n of_o faith_n of_o which_o that_o may_v be_v say_v which_o hilary_n speak_v to_o constantius_n constantium_fw-la contra_fw-la constantium_fw-la quicquid_fw-la apud_fw-la te_fw-la praeter_fw-la fidem_fw-la unam_fw-la est_fw-la perfidia_fw-la non_fw-la fides_fw-la est_fw-la whatsoever_o this_o wicked_a pope_n have_v set_v forth_o beside_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v perfidiousnes_n and_o not_o faith_n of_o this_o quality_n be_v his_o doctrine_n of_o romish_a tradiction_n of_o superstitious_a ceremony_n of_o the_o blasphemous_a mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o five_o new_a devise_v sacrament_n and_o such_o like_a doctrine_n that_o the_o papist_n be_v by_o schism_n rend_v from_o the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a particular_n first_o christ_n church_n have_v but_o one_o head_n that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v as_o many_o head_n as_o pope_n and_o head_n that_o teach_v doctrine_n both_o diverse_a and_o contrary_a to_o christ_n our_o sole_a head_n second_o christ_n his_o church_n have_v no_o other_o spouse_n but_o christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o adulterous_a romish_a synagogue_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o spouse_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o have_v as_o many_o spouse_n as_o pope_n and_o be_v not_o virgo_fw-la but_o polygama_n that_o be_v one_o that_o have_v many_o husband_n or_o spouse_n three_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n and_o have_v beside_o this_o no_o other_o foundation_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o foundation_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o be_v sometime_o without_o foundation_n at_o least_o during_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o popedom_n and_o have_v as_o many_o diverse_a foundation_n as_o pope_n four_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_v &_o that_o he_o have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n but_o also_o to_o save_v and_o destroy_v which_o do_v show_v that_o she_o devide_v herself_o from_o christ_n catholic_a church_n which_o for_o many_o age_n after_o christ_n time_n have_v no_o such_o conceit_n five_o the_o same_o do_v rely_v no_o less_o upon_o tradition_n not_o write_v and_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n then_o upon_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o six_o this_o synagogue_n consist_v of_o a_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n together_o with_o a_o rabble_n of_o monk_n friar_n and_o sacrifice_a priest_n but_o in_o the_o prime_a catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o
he_o say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v the_o direct_a rule_n and_o squire_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o in_o the_o warnw._n enc._n 1._o c._n 15._o nu_fw-la 10._o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n deliver_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o miracle_n and_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o i_o omit_v to_o tell_v robert_n parson_n that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n and_o a_o squire_n the_o rule_n be_v direct_a and_o the_o squire_n be_v square_a it_o be_v also_o ridiculous_a though_o i_o do_v not_o tell_v he_o of_o it_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o miracle_n for_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o writing_n and_o preach_v and_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o i_o can_v forbear_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n how_o then_o can_v these_o two_o make_v one_o rule_n next_o he_o take_v exception_n to_o my_o word_n where_o i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v a_o certain_a rule_n to_o follow_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o those_o conclusion_n which_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o they_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n or_o else_o as_o if_o tradition_n that_o be_v not_o where_o certain_o describe_v or_o set_v down_o be_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o authentical_a rule_n then_o scripture_n and_o necessary_a deduction_n out_o of_o they_o four_o he_o give_v out_o 17._o warnw._n 1._o encont_v cap._n 17._o that_o we_o despair_v of_o all_o certain_a rule_n or_o mean_v to_o try_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o most_o desperate_a and_o impudent_a kind_n of_o deal_v for_o direct_o i_o tell_v he_o before_o and_o now_o i_o tell_v he_o again_o that_o our_o rule_n be_v most_o certain_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o conclusion_n necessary_a draw_v out_o of_o they_o nay_o this_o rule_n may_v in_o part_n be_v confirm_v by_o parson_n his_o own_o confession_n for_o if_o the_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o say_v warnw_n 1._o encont_v c._n 15._o where_o be_v we_o to_o find_v it_o but_o in_o holy_a scripture_n he_o hold_v percase_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o pope_n bosom_n but_o if_o he_o say_v so_o in_o school_n he_o shall_v not_o want_v a_o great_a plaudit_fw-la than_o he_o have_v when_o have_v end_v his_o comical_a deal_n in_o bayliol_n college_n he_o be_v ring_v and_o hiss_v out_o of_o the_o house_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o scab_n and_o villainy_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o pope_n bosom_n than_o any_o corpse_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n for_o that_o be_v very_o rife_a with_o they_o with_o the_o corpse_n of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n the_o italian_a atheistical_a pope_n be_v little_o acquaint_v we_o tell_v he_o further_o that_o for_o trial_n of_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n we_o be_v not_o to_o run_v to_o the_o pope_n sea_n which_o be_v as_o much_o able_a to_o resolve_v we_o as_o his_o close_a stool_n but_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n about_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v then_o to_o compare_v the_o same_o with_o other_o place_n to_o search_v the_o resolution_n of_o counsel_n of_o ancient_a and_o late_a father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o learned_a man_n provide_v always_o that_o nothing_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o ground_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o then_o s._n augustine_n or_o hierome_n or_o ambrose_n or_o luther_n or_o caluin_n or_o any_o preacher_n among_o we_o bring_v we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v but_o if_o they_o teach_v without_o that_o we_o be_v not_o necessary_o to_o credit_v they_o nor_o to_o believe_v they_o in_o ground_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n we_o learn_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n albeit_o all_o particular_a matter_n be_v not_o precise_o set_v down_o so_o likewise_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v most_o true_a &_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v christ_n body_n in_o a_o mystery_n or_o sacramental_o albeit_o how_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n there_o may_v be_v some_o difference_n likewise_o out_o of_o scripture_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o most_o principal_a man_n in_o his_o realm_n and_o not_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o other_o in_o external_a government_n albeit_o every_o one_o percase_o understand_v not_o the_o several_a point_n of_o his_o supreme_a authority_n these_o difference_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o our_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a five_o he_o will_v insinuate_v that_o as_o virtue_n houskéeping_n &_o true_a deal_n be_v much_o decay_a since_o her_o majesty_n come_v to_o the_o crown_n so_o pride_n in_o apparel_n gluttony_n drunkenness_n lechery_n swear_v and_o other_o vice_n be_v much_o increase_v but_o the_o man_n shall_v show_v that_o these_o virtue_n be_v decay_v and_o vice_n increase_v in_o man_n that_o be_v true_o of_o our_o religion_n if_o he_o say_v so_o then_o let_v he_o name_v the_o man_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o fault_n if_o the_o man_n that_o be_v guilty_a be_v papist_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v know_v to_o be_v carnal_a and_o cruel_a and_o most_o vicious_a he_o strike_v himself_o and_o not_o us._n if_o they_o be_v atheist_n or_o hypocrite_n than_o his_o allegation_n make_v not_o to_o purpose_n this_o i_o will_v speak_v to_o his_o tooth_n that_o if_o our_o ministry_n be_v no_o more_o honest_a and_o virtuous_a than_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n friar_n and_o masspriest_n and_o our_o true_a professor_n then_o zealous_a papist_n it_o be_v pity_v they_o shall_v live_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n some_o proof_n i_o have_v bring_v before_o and_o more_o i_o shall_v allege_v hereafter_o let_v parson_n do_v the_o like_a against_o we_o and_o leave_v his_o hypocritical_a ostentation_n and_o general_a declamation_n that_o make_v man_n rather_o to_o wonder_v at_o his_o impudence_n then_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o deal_v true_o or_o sincere_o 18._o wardw._n p._n 3._o warnw._n 1._o encoutr_n cap._n 18._o six_o he_o very_o impudent_o impute_v all_o the_o trouble_n war_n and_o calamity_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o scotland_n ireland_n flanders_n &_o france_n to_o alteration_n in_o religion_n and_o will_v lay_v the_o blame_n whole_o upon_o us._n but_o if_o he_o look_v into_o their_o immediate_a cause_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o mint_n of_o this_o money_n be_v the_o pope_n consistory_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o agent_n be_v the_o only_a firebrand_n of_o all_o mischief_n in_o ireland_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o stir_v up_o rebellion_n by_o the_o traitor_n saunders_n his_o legate_n in_o england_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la by_o his_o agent_n ridolphi_n and_o by_o morton_n his_o messenger_n move_v the_o two_o earl_n to_o rise_v in_o the_o north_n anno_fw-la 1569._o the_o same_o pope_n animate_v the_o spanish_a king_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o against_o they_o of_o the_o low_a country_n the_o same_o pope_n send_v not_o only_o his_o agent_n to_o stir_v the_o french_a but_o aid_v they_o both_o with_o man_n and_o money_n gregory_n the_o thirteen_o likewise_o send_v aid_n to_o irish_a rebel_n the_o war_n of_o germany_n be_v inflame_v by_o that_o butcherly_a pope_n paul_n the_o three_o to_o make_v short_a all_o massacre_n treachery_n war_n and_o trouble_n have_v whole_o proceed_v from_o their_o malice_n against_o the_o truth_n if_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n therefore_o have_v be_v trouble_v so_o be_v herode_fw-la and_o all_o jerusalem_n with_o he_o at_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o blame_v we_o for_o their_o trouble_n so_o do_v the_o pagan_n impute_v all_o their_o trouble_n to_o christian_n and_o their_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a cause_n be_v not_o religion_n but_o the_o hatred_n of_o impious_a papist_n against_o religion_n final_o he_o say_v that_o if_o her_o majesty_n have_v not_o alter_v religion_n than_o her_o kingdom_n have_v be_v flourish_v and_o secure_a and_o that_o she_o will_v have_v have_v issue_n and_o her_o succession_n certain_a and_o continue_v in_o friendship_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o ancient_a confederate_n and_o neither_o have_v war_n abroad_o nor_o treason_n at_o home_n and_o insinuate_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o alteration_n of_o religion_n all_o be_v fall_v out_o contrary_a but_o if_o will_v summer_n have_v
brook_v her_o reformation_n but_o look_v back_o to_o the_o abomination_n of_o egypt_n and_o babylon_n i_o have_v think_v it_o convenient_a not_o only_o to_o declare_v at_o large_a what_o benefit_n the_o people_n of_o england_n now_o five_o and_o forty_o year_n almost_o enjoy_v by_o her_o gracious_a and_o happy_a government_n but_o also_o to_o justify_v the_o same_o against_o the_o slanderous_a calumniation_n and_o cavil_n of_o robert_n parson_n her_o bear_a subject_n but_o now_o a_o renegade_n jebusite_n and_o profess_a enemy_n who_o in_o diverse_a wicked_a libel_n and_o paltry_a pamphlet_n have_v endeavour_v to_o obscure_v her_o great_a glory_n and_o to_o deface_v her_o worthy_a action_n wherein_o that_o i_o may_v proceed_v with_o more_o perspicuity_n i_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o reason_n first_o of_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o afterward_o of_o civil_a and_o worldly_a affair_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n which_o by_o her_o mean_n grow_v to_o a_o better_a settlement_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v first_o what_o grace_v it_o be_v to_o have_v a_o certainty_n in_o religion_n and_o next_o what_o favour_n god_n show_v to_o we_o reduce_v we_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n three_o we_o will_v reason_v of_o true_a faith_n four_o of_o the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fift_o of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n sixthly_a of_o the_o scripture_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o our_o mother_n tongue_n seventh_o of_o freedom_n we_o enjoy_v by_o she_o from_o persecution_n from_o the_o pope_n exaction_n from_o his_o wicked_a law_n and_o unjust_a censure_n from_o all_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n eight_o of_o deliverance_n from_o schism_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o final_o of_o good_a work_n and_o the_o happiness_n of_o those_o that_o not_o only_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v which_o be_v good_a work_n but_o also_o do_v walk_v in_o they_o according_a to_o their_o christian_a profession_n avoid_v pretend_v popish_a good-worke_n that_o be_v either_o impious_a or_o else_o superstitious_a and_o unprofitable_a all_o which_o grace_n this_o land_n have_v long_o enjoy_v by_o her_o majesty_n reformation_n of_o religion_n in_o matter_n political_a we_o purpose_v to_o consider_v first_o the_o happy_a deliverance_n of_o this_o land_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o spaniard_n &_o from_o all_o fear_n of_o foreign_a enemy_n next_o her_o famous_a victory_n both_o against_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n at_o home_n and_o open_a enemy_n abroad_o and_o her_o glory_n and_o reputation_n with_o foreign_a nation_n three_o the_o restitution_n of_o all_o royal_a authority_n and_o pre-eminence_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o which_o the_o pope_n before_o that_o have_v usurp_v a_o great_a part_n four_o the_o peaceable_a estate_n of_o this_o kingdom_n in_o the_o tumult_n of_o other_o nation_n round_o about_o we_o and_o last_o the_o wealth_n and_o multitude_n of_o her_o subject_n chap._n i._o of_o certainty_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o of_o the_o union_n we_o have_v with_o the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n faith_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n heb._n 11._o be_v the_o ground_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o see_v if_o then_o we_o have_v true_a faith_n we_o be_v assure_v of_o thing_n hope_v for_o although_o not_o see_v 24._o luke_n 24._o when_o two_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n doubt_v of_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o fool_n and_o slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v ideo_fw-la fideles_fw-la vocati_fw-la sumus_fw-la say_v chrysostom_n hom._n 1._o in_o 1._o tim_n 4._o ut_fw-la his_fw-la quae_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la sine_fw-la ulla_fw-la haesitatione_n credamus_fw-la therefore_o we_o be_v call_v faithful_a that_o we_o may_v believe_v without_o doubt_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v so_o then_o all_o christian_n that_o believe_v do_v certain_o believe_v and_o be_v persuade_v and_o he_o that_o doubt_v beléeve_v not_o further_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 24._o saint_n augustine_n do_v attribute_v that_o only_a to_o the_o writer_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v neither_o need_v i_o to_o stand_v long_o upon_o this_o point_n see_v our_o adversary_n also_o confess_v that_o nothing_o that_o be_v false_a can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n but_o our_o adversary_n take_v away_o from_o christian_n all_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n for_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o no_o christian_a be_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o second_o they_o make_v man_n faith_n uncertain_a concern_v the_o object_n that_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 6._o cap._n 16._o where_o it_o say_v ne_fw-fr que_fw-fr seipsum_fw-la aliquis_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la nihil_fw-la sibi_fw-la conscius_fw-la sit_fw-la iudicare_fw-la debet_fw-la that_o be_v neither_o aught_o any_o to_o judge_v himself_o although_o he_o be_v not_o conscious_a to_o himself_o of_o any_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o same_o session_n chap._n 9_o it_o determine_v that_o no_o man_n by_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o second_o point_n do_v follow_v of_o the_o diverse_a doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n ecclesia_fw-la ench●rid●e_fw-fr de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la eckius_fw-la hold_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o authentical_a without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o although_o bellarmine_n dare_v not_o allow_v this_o form_n of_o speech_n yet_o where_o he_o defend_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n concern_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n in_o effect_n he_o grant_v it_o for_o if_o the_o church_n only_o can_v make_v scripture_n authentical_a without_o the_o church_n authority_n they_o be_v not_o authentical_a in_o his_o book_n de_n not_o be_v eccles_n c._n 2._o he_o say_v the_o scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o church_n scriptura_fw-la say_v he_o pendent_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la stapleton_n lib._n 9_o the_o princip_n doctrinal_a cap._n 4._o say_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n authority_n shall_v consign_v and_o declare_v which_o book_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n necessarium_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o ut_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la aeuthoritas_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la canonem_fw-la consignet_fw-la and_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o receive_v any_o book_n for_o canonical_a but_o such_o as_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n shall_v determine_v to_o be_v canonical_a and_o those_o upon_o the_o church_n determination_n he_o will_v have_v necessary_o receive_v 4._o sess_n 4._o second_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n make_v scripture_n and_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o equal_a value_n bellarmine_n in_o his_o four_o book_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la speak_v not_o otherwise_o of_o tradition_n then_o as_o of_o the_o infallible_a write_a word_n of_o god_n stapleton_n say_v 1._o lib._n 7_o princ_fw-la doct_n c._n 1._o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n do_v signify_v all_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v deliver_v and_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o very_o absurd_o as_o i_o think_v no_o reasonable_a man_n can_v well_o deny_v for_o that_o be_v grant_v the_o rule_n and_o doctrine_n rule_v shall_v be_v all_o one_o but_o of_o that_o we_o shall_v speak_v otherwhere_o three_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o less_o firm_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o reverent_o to_o be_v hold_v then_o if_o they_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n id_fw-la quod_fw-la sancta_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la definit_a vel_fw-la acceptat_fw-la say_v eckius_fw-la enchir._n cap._n de_fw-la eccles_n non_fw-la est_fw-la minore_fw-la firmitate_fw-la credendum_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratione_n tenendum_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la literis_fw-la sit_fw-la expressum_fw-la and_o all_o our_o adversary_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n determination_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a and_o so_o to_o be_v account_v of_o final_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o they_o place_v the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n in_o equal_a rank_n with_o canonical_a scripture_n of_o these_o position_n it_o follow_v that_o as_o long_o as_o man_n believe_v the_o romish_a church_n they_o neither_o believe_v truth_n nor_o have_v any_o certain_a faith_n or_o religion_n and_o that_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o argument_n first_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o god_n promise_n concern_v his_o own_o salvation_n be_v a_o infidel_n and_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n but_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o all_o papist_n for_o not_o one_o of_o they_o beléeve_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v nor_o imagine_v that_o god_n have_v say_v or_o promise_v any_o thing_n concern_v his_o own_o salvation_n second_o if_o the_o scripture_n depend_v
if_o the_o people_n pray_v in_o latin_a which_o as_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a make_v saint_n present_a in_o all_o place_n so_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o he_o require_v little_a understanding_n in_o the_o people_n hosius_n commend_v the_o coliars_n faith_n petrik_n in_o confess_v petrik_n that_o can_v not_o tell_v one_o article_n of_o his_o belief_n but_o only_o answer_v that_o he_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v which_o be_v a_o argument_n first_o of_o the_o commendation_n of_o ignorance_n among_o the_o papist_n next_o of_o hosius_n his_o blasphemy_n that_o will_v have_v a_o man_n save_v beléeve_v as_o do_v the_o catholic_a church_n albeit_o he_o beléeve_v or_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n jesus_n see_v then_o the_o papist_n require_v so_o little_a knowledge_n in_o the_o people_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o either_o to_o pray_v or_o to_o have_v scripture_n read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o preach_v so_o seldom_o and_o so_o lewd_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o they_o shall_v prove_v great_a clerk_n furthermore_o the_o priest_n in_o england_n be_v command_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n the_o worship_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o image_n of_o relic_n and_o how_o far_o the_o same_o reach_v as_o appear_v by_o b._n arundel_n provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n nullus_fw-la de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la they_o be_v also_o teach_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n be_v s._n austin_n of_o canterbury_n s._n bernac_n s._n dunstane_n and_o such_o good_a fellow_n and_o be_v wont_a to_o hear_v many_o good_a tale_n of_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n audrey_n and_o s._n cuthburge_n and_o other_o she_o saint_n but_o all_o this_o tend_v little_a to_o instruction_n in_o faith_n or_o reformation_n in_o manner_n final_o in_o stead_n of_o true_a doctrine_n they_o be_v teach_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n concern_v worship_n of_o saint_n cross_n image_n relic_n fast_v on_o saint_n vigil_n pilgrimage_n indulgence_n purgatory_n and_o such_o like_a petrus_n de_fw-fr alliac_n lib._n de_fw-fr reform_v ecclesiae_fw-la wish_v that_o apocryphal_a scripture_n and_o new_a hymn_n and_o prayer_n and_o other_o voluntary_a novelty_n shall_v not_o be_v read_v in_o church_n quòd_fw-la in_o huiusmodi_fw-la festis_fw-la scripturae_fw-la apocryphae_fw-la aut_fw-la hymni_fw-la novi_fw-la vel_fw-la orationes_fw-la seu_fw-la aliae_fw-la voluntariae_fw-la novitates_fw-la non_fw-la legerentur_fw-la but_o he_o prevail_v not_o nay_o further_o they_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o apocryphal_a novelty_n but_o also_o most_o wicked_o rehearse_v the_o commandment_n they_o have_v leave_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n that_o concern_v worship_n of_o image_n albeit_o s._n augustine_n quaest_n ex_fw-la vet_z test_n 7._o do_v set_v it_o down_o for_o a_o distinct_a commandment_n from_o the_o first_o be_v then_o teach_v very_o little_a truth_n and_o much_o falsehood_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v in_o time_n past_o very_o ignorant_a and_o that_o john_n billet_v in_o prolog_n de_fw-mi divin_v off_o plain_o confess_v experience_n also_o teach_v the_o same_o and_o manifest_o show_v that_o they_o scarce_o understand_v any_o article_n of_o the_o créed_a a_o certain_a italian_a being_n ask_v not_o many_o year_n since_o by_o his_o confessor_n in_o rome_n whether_o he_o beléeve_v the_o holy_a trinity_n answer_v yea_o be_v further_o demand_v what_o the_o trinity_n be_v what_o say_v he_o but_o our_o lord_n god_n and_o our_o lady_n and_o you_o our_o master_n the_o priest_n and_o friar_n they_o be_v so_o brutish_a that_o they_o very_o believe_v that_o image_n walk_v and_o talk_v poggio_n poggio_n and_o have_v life_n certain_a parishioner_n of_o a_o village_n not_o far_o from_o florence_n come_v to_o the_o city_n to_o bespeak_v a_o crucifix_n the_o carver_n see_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o man_n ask_v they_o whether_o they_o will_v have_v one_o alive_a or_o dead_a the_o party_n after_o some_o deliberation_n answer_v they_o will_v have_v a_o crucifix_n alive_a for_o say_v they_o if_o the_o parish_n like_o he_o not_o we_o will_v kill_v he_o and_o so_o rid_v our_o hand_n of_o he_o most_o of_o they_o believe_v the_o lie_n and_o fable_n that_o priest_n tell_v they_o out_o of_o their_o legend_n and_o those_o be_v the_o best_a part_n of_o their_o knowledge_n a_o poor_a country_n man_n of_o we_o believe_v that_o s._n tinnoc_n of_o portlemouth_n in_o devon_n be_v a_o good_a guardian_n of_o sheep_n and_o therefore_o offer_v every_o year_n a_o fleece_n on_o a_o time_n pass_v over_o the_o water_n at_o salcomb_n with_o his_o offering_n and_o be_v in_o danger_n vow_v if_o he_o escape_v to_o offer_v his_o horse_n which_o he_o do_v and_o the_o saint_n with_o good_a glee_n and_o a_o beck_n accept_v he_o but_o not_o be_v able_a well_o to_o return_v on_o foot_n he_o pray_v he_o may_v buy_v his_o horse_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o priest_n be_v the_o broker_n and_o make_v the_o bargain_n but_o it_o be_v so_o hard_o that_o the_o poor_a man_n say_v he_o be_v a_o good_a keeper_n of_o sheep_n but_o a_o cutthroat_n saint_n to_o deal_v withal_o in_o buy_v and_o sell_v common_o they_o neither_o understand_v what_o they_o pray_v nor_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v they_o now_o understand_v much_o more_o albeit_o the_o priest_n in_o their_o new_a and_o false_a catechism_n endeavour_n to_o teach_v they_o somewhat_o if_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v experience_n yet_o let_v they_o read_v what_o friar_n themselves_o in_o their_o sermon_n and_o what_o other_o say_v in_o their_o writing_n vincentius_n in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr fine_fw-la mundi_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o people_n of_o his_o time_n say_v praedicationes_fw-la non_fw-la audiunt_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la they_o hear_v not_o sermon_n they_o know_v not_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n robertus_fw-la gallus_n in_o his_o 32._o vision_n say_v that_o all_o child_n except_o a_o few_o shall_v depart_v from_o their_o father_n leave_v the_o example_n and_o admonition_n of_o their_o elder_n and_o that_o worldly_a mind_n shall_v remain_v under_o counterfeit_a religion_n apostatabunt_fw-la filii_fw-la omnes_fw-la exceptis_fw-la paucis_fw-la à_fw-la patribus_fw-la suis_fw-la relinquentesque_fw-la vitas_fw-la &_o monita_fw-la maiorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la palliata_fw-la religione_fw-la seculares_fw-la animi_fw-la permanebunt_fw-la brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n say_v 15._o 3._o brigit_fw-la 15._o that_o the_o work_n and_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o neglect_v that_o few_o thought_n of_o they_o or_o remember_v they_o opera_fw-la &_o verba_fw-la christi_fw-la sunt_fw-la adeò_fw-la neglecta_fw-la ut_fw-la iam_fw-la pauci_fw-la ea_fw-la recolant_fw-la eccles_n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr eccles_n hosius_n dispute_v against_o brentius_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o collier_n that_o can_v answer_v nothing_o of_o his_o faith_n but_o that_o he_o beléeve_v as_o the_o church_n beléeve_v we_o may_v therefore_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o apostasy_n speak_v of_o by_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 4._o be_v plain_o see_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o that_o the_o smoke_n that_o ascend_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n like_o the_o smoke_n of_o a_o furnace_n and_o darken_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o air_n as_o we_o may_v read_v apocalypse_v 9_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o error_n and_o ignorance_n of_o papist_n that_o cover_v christian_a religion_n and_o obscure_v the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o defection_n and_o darkness_n robertus_fw-la gallus_n do_v speak_v in_o his_o vision_n ca._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o this_o darkness_n and_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v arise_v out_o of_o the_o church_n egressa_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o caligo_n illa_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la 19_o onus_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 19_o sol_fw-la say_v another_o qui_fw-la est_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la potentatus_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la niger_n quia_fw-la non_fw-la serenum_fw-la coelum_fw-la sed_fw-la tetrum_fw-la infernum_fw-la aperit_fw-la propterea_fw-la perversus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la nuncupatur_fw-la angelus_n abyssi_fw-la the_o sun_n which_o be_v the_o spiritual_a power_n be_v make_v black_a because_o he_o the_o pope_n open_v not_o the_o clear_a heaven_n but_o black_a hell_n therefore_o a_o perverse_a pope_n be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o again_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o be_v the_o malignant_a church_n be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o kingdom_n be_v dark_a francis_n petrarch_n in_o his_o seventéenth_fw-mi epistle_n describe_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n nulla_fw-la ibi_fw-la lux_fw-la say_v he_o nullus_fw-la dux_fw-la nullus_fw-la index_n anfractuum_fw-la sed_fw-la caligo_n undique_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la confusio_fw-la ne_fw-la parum_fw-la vera_fw-la sit_fw-la babylon_n ac_fw-la perplexitas_fw-la mira_fw-la utque_fw-la lucani_n verbis_fw-la utar_fw-la nox_fw-la ingens_fw-la scelerum_fw-la tenebrosa_fw-la inquam_fw-la &_o aeterna_fw-la nox_fw-la expers_fw-la syderum_fw-la &_o aurorae_fw-la nescia_fw-la tum_fw-la profunda_fw-la &_o iugis_fw-la actuum_fw-la opacitas_fw-la
libros_fw-la tam_fw-la veteris_fw-la quàm_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la cùm_fw-la utriusque_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la sit_fw-la author_n nec_fw-la non_fw-la traditiones_fw-la ipsas_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la mores_fw-la pertinentes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vel_fw-la ore_fw-la tenus_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la vel_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it dictatas_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la successione_n in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la conseruatus_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la ac_fw-la reverentia_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratur_fw-la those_o likewise_o among_o the_o papist_n that_o proceed_v doctor_n or_o take_v any_o degree_n in_o school_n do_v profess_v that_o they_o most_o firm_o admit_v and_o embrace_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a observance_n and_o constitution_n apostolicas_fw-la &_o ecclesiasticas_fw-la traditiones_fw-la reliquasque_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la obseruationes_fw-la &_o constitutiones_fw-la firmissimè_fw-la admitto_fw-la say_v every_o one_o of_o they_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 1._o beginning_n to_o speak_v of_o tradition_n hitherto_o say_v he_o we_o have_v dispute_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n now_o we_o will_v begin_v to_o speak_v brief_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v account_v tradition_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o holy_a scripture_n doctrine_n praefat_fw-la ante_fw-la relect_a princip_n doctrine_n aliud_fw-la hodie_fw-la religionis_fw-la christianae_n fundamentum_fw-la say_v stapleton_n habemus_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la aliud_fw-la sed_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la euangelicis_fw-la &_o apostolicis_fw-la aliud_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v now_o another_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n not_o diverse_a from_o christ_n but_o diverse_a from_o the_o evangelicall_a and_o apostolical_a scripture_n so_o either_o he_o exclude_v scripture_n from_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o else_o make_v unwritten_a tradition_n equal_a unto_o they_o afterward_o in_o his_o analysis_n prefix_v before_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n he_o vouchsafe_v the_o scripture_n no_o place_n among_o they_o but_o first_o if_o by_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n they_o understand_v all_o the_o book_n contain_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n then_o they_o admit_v the_o three_o and_o four_o book_n of_o esdras_n and_o all_o addition_n to_o the_o original_a text_n to_o be_v canoniall_a scripture_n which_o contradict_v their_o own_o decree_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n second_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o make_v unwritten_a tradition_n equal_a with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o these_o be_v certain_o know_v to_o proceed_v from_o god_n but_o of_o unwritten_a tradition_n the_o adversary_n can_v bring_v no_o proof_n but_o from_o man_n now_o who_o be_v so_o presumptuous_a as_o to_o match_v the_o testimony_n of_o man_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n augustine_n in_o his_o 48._o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n speak_v of_o the_o father_n writing_n say_v they_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o in_o his_o eight_o epistle_n which_o be_v to_o hierome_n he_o say_v that_o unto_o the_o scripture_n alone_o this_o prerogative_n be_v to_o be_v give_v that_o none_o of_o they_o contain_v any_o error_n all_o other_o author_n he_o will_v have_v censure_v and_o examine_v by_o they_o be_v not_o free_a from_o error_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v always_o consonant_a and_o agreeable_a to_o themselves_o but_o tradition_n do_v not_o only_o contradict_v one_o another_o but_o also_o be_v repugnant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n polycrates_n as_o eusebius_n lib._n 5._o eccles_n hist_o c._n 23._o report_v maintain_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n victor_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n think_v contrary_a some_o maintain_v the_o fast_a upon_o the_o sabbath_n other_o deny_v it_o and_o both_o hold_v by_o tradition_n sive_fw-la hodiè_fw-la christus_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n whether_o christ_n be_v bear_v or_o baptize_v as_o this_o day_n say_v hierome_n serm_n de_fw-fr nat_n to_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o diverse_a opinion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o tradition_n there_o be_v diverse_a judgement_n the_o romanist_n do_v find_v their_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o their_o mass_n without_o communion_n and_o the_o external_a &_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o hang_n up_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o pix_n and_o the_o divine_a adoration_n give_v to_o it_o upon_o tradition_n but_o all_o these_o observation_n be_v impious_a and_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n some_o tradition_n be_v now_o abolish_v as_o the_o prohibition_n of_o saturday_n fast_n the_o rite_n of_o stand_v when_o we_o pray_v between_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n the_o form_n of_o prayer_n in_o old_a time_n use_v in_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o diverse_a other_o whereof_o some_o be_v mention_v by_o basil_n lib._n de_fw-la spir._n san_z c._n 27._o bellarmine_n also_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 2._o confess_v that_o some_o tradition_n be_v temporary_a but_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v temporary_a or_o at_o any_o time_n to_o be_v abolish_v diverse_a tradition_n be_v not_o where_o find_v but_o in_o the_o legend_n missal_n and_o portess_n and_o such_o book_n of_o small_a account_n and_o credit_n as_o for_o example_n the_o ceremony_n &_o rite_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o prayer_n of_o the_o canon_n the_o formal_a adoration_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o incredible_a narration_n of_o s._n clement_n s._n nicholas_n s._n christopher_n s._n george_n s._n catherine_n s._n dominicke_n s._n francis_n and_o infinite_a other_o saint_n which_o no_o man_n may_v receive_v with_o like_a affection_n as_o he_o receive_v holy_a scripture_n but_o he_o shall_v infinite_o disgrace_v the_o scripture_n and_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o catholic_a furthermore_o if_o the_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n upon_o tradition_n then_o be_v their_o faith_n humane_a as_o have_v no_o ground_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o man_n and_o that_o man_n that_o speak_v of_o tradition_n their_o faith_n be_v also_o most_o weak_a and_o fantastical_a as_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o lie_v report_v in_o legend_n and_o the_o fantastical_a ceremony_n contain_v in_o the_o missal_n and_o breviary_n the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o apostle_n ephes_n 6._o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n 3_o 2._o tim_n 3_o write_v to_o timothy_n he_o say_v holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o absolute_a and_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n but_o howsoever_o the_o blind_a papist_n favour_v their_o tradition_n yet_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o call_v their_o fardel_n of_o tradition_n god_n eternal_a testament_n or_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o to_o say_v that_o tradition_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a or_o wise_a to_o salvation_n final_o no_o holy_a father_n do_v ever_o make_v ecclesiastical_a tradition_n not_o write_v nor_o contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o only_o commend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o keep_v by_o custom_n or_o take_v up_o by_o fancy_n and_o record_v only_o in_o humane_a writing_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o canonical_a scripture_n infidelitatis_fw-la argumentum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n confess_v in_o serm_n de_fw-fr fid_fw-we confess_v say_v basil_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o pride_n if_o a_o man_n will_v reject_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v or_o bring_v in_o any_o thing_n not_o write_v the_o like_a say_n he_o have_v moral_a 72._o c._n 1._o &_o 86._o &_o 22._o neither_o be_v it_o like_v that_o he_o shall_v speak_v of_o tradition_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n as_o some_o do_v answer_v for_o every_o christian_a man_n know_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o admonish_v man_n of_o that_o have_v be_v superfluous_a si_fw-mi quid_fw-la dicatur_fw-la absque_fw-la scriptura_fw-la say_v chrysostome_n hom_n in_o psal_n 95._o auditorum_fw-la cogitatio_fw-la claudicat_fw-la nunc_fw-la annuens_fw-la nunc_fw-la hastans_fw-la if_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v without_o proof_n of_o scripture_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o hearer_n rest_v in_o suspense_n now_o yield_v now_o deny_v neither_o do_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o man_n own_o invention_n but_o also_o of_o all_o other_o man_n report_n or_o devise_n without_o ground_n of_o scripture_n in_o his_o thirteen_o homily_n upon_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o call_v
word_n fol._n 81._o he_o make_v sport_n with_o word_n of_o scripture_n compare_v cadburie_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o yet_o this_o fellow_n be_v esteem_v a_o worthy_a patron_n of_o popery_n such_o a_o patron_n such_o a_o cause_n fol._n 101._o he_o deny_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o mean_v either_o impious_o to_o overthrow_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o else_o to_o prefer_v uncertain_a tradition_n before_o they_o 2._o enconter_v c._n 5._o fol._n 32._o 6._o he_o compare_v read_v of_o scripture_n to_o excess_n of_o apparel_n spend_v much_o and_o play_v at_o die_n like_o a_o cheat_a companion_n draw_v similitude_n from_o his_o own_o practice_n to_o disgrace_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 6._o encontr_n 2._o he_o will_v not_o confess_v his_o error_n that_o say_v before_o wardw._n p._n 14._o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o make_v against_o read_v of_o scripture_n who_o can_v deny_v say_v he_o but_o saint_n paul_n talk_v of_o scripture_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o learned_a tongue_n say_v of_o they_o litera_fw-la occidit_fw-la but_o to_o accuse_v man_n for_o read_v of_o scripture_n be_v impious_a and_o savore_v of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o origenist_n and_o swenchfeldians_n error_n that_o condemn_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o can_v he_o excuse_v himself_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v rash_a read_n for_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o letter_n kill_v talk_v not_o of_o read_v but_o of_o the_o effect_n that_o the_o scripture_n work_v in_o man_n heart_n show_v that_o the_o letter_n condemn_v those_o which_o by_o grace_n be_v not_o move_v effectual_o to_o embrace_v the_o word_n chap._n 11._o encontr_n 2._o most_o blasphemous_o he_o compare_v christ_n miracle_n to_o the_o miracle_n of_o thomas_n becket_n and_o his_o lie_a legend_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o which_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v mark_v as_o a_o miraculous_a blasphemer_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v that_o material_a honour_n in_o worship_v saint_n hurt_v not_o the_o devout_a nor_o diminish_v their_o merit_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o those_o that_o worship_v thief_n and_o malefactor_n as_o saint_n offend_v not_o but_o rather_o merit_v with_o god_n and_o that_o man_n may_v worship_v they_o know_v not_o who_o nor_o what_o fol._n 99_o he_o maintain_v a_o blasphemous_a prayer_n wherein_o papist_n desire_v to_o come_v to_o heaven_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o thomas_n becket_n and_o to_o mend_v the_o matter_n say_v it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o prophet_n do_v mention_v abraham_n isac_n and_o jacob_n and_o yet_o no_o prophet_n or_o godly_a man_n ever_o pray_v to_o come_v to_o heaven_n by_o their_o blood_n 2._o encontr_n c._n 14._o he_o defend_v those_o blasphemous_a verse_n hic_fw-la des_fw-fr devotè_fw-fr coelestibus_fw-la associo_fw-la te_fw-la mentes_fw-la aegrotae_fw-la per_fw-la munera_fw-la sunt_fw-la tibi_fw-la lotae_fw-la whereby_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o man_n sin_n be_v wash_v by_o alm_n which_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o our_o sin_n only_o be_v wash_v away_o and_o we_o cleanse_v folly_n 114._o 2._o encontr_n c._n 14._o cavil_v with_o sir_n francis_n hastings_n about_o his_o inference_n make_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o durand_n that_o say_v how_o that_o indulgence_n be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o illation_n of_o those_o that_o dispute_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o his_o father_n and_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v as_o good_a as_o that_o of_o sir_n francis_n against_o indulgence_n but_o it_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a to_o compare_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o religion_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n prove_v and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n with_o the_o trash_n and_o pelf_n of_o indulgence_n that_o have_v neither_o ground_n in_o scripture_n nor_o father_n nor_o reason_n as_o at_o large_a i_o have_v prove_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr indulgentijs_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n 126._o fol._n 126._o our_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n justify_v without_o work_n parson_n call_v a_o idle_a device_n and_o a_o mathematical_a illusion_n the_o which_o touch_v the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o us._n 2._o gal._n 2._o for_o he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n no_o flesh_n shall_v be_v justify_v it_o touch_v also_o the_o father_n that_o say_v work_n go_v not_o before_o but_o follow_v after_o righteousness_n the_o same_o also_o touch_v the_o papist_n themselves_o which_o confess_v that_o our_o first_o justice_n be_v not_o of_o work_n but_o whatsoever_o christian_n be_v to_o think_v of_o work_n parson_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o put_v any_o confidence_n in_o his_o own_o work_n unless_o he_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o juggle_a lie_a cog_a rail_a cozen_a commit_v treason_n and_o villainy_n neither_o have_v he_o cause_n to_o talk_v of_o mathematical_a illusion_n have_v himself_o egregious_o delude_v all_o those_o with_o who_o he_o have_v deal_v and_o beléeve_v as_o it_o seem_v no_o heaven_n but_o mathematical_a if_o he_o hope_v to_o go_v thither_o by_o the_o pope_n pardon_n tie_v about_o his_o neck_n like_o necklace_n and_o fly_v upward_o like_o a_o young_a dragon_n he_o be_v far_o deceive_v that_o be_v no_o place_n for_o such_o dragon_n nor_o be_v pardon_n wing_n to_o fly_v so_o high_a withal_o we_o hope_v rather_o to_o see_v he_o send_v fly_v to_o his_o holy_a father_n with_o a_o hempen_a halter_n about_o his_o neck_n and_o lead_v triumphant_o in_o a_o dongcart_n to_o the_o gallows_n as_o a_o due_a reward_n for_o his_o lewd_a work_n and_o treason_n be_v it_o not_o then_o strange_a that_o such_o a_o atheist_n shall_v talk_v of_o religion_n dear_a cic._n lib._n 1._o &_o 2._o the_o nat_n dear_a the_o heathen_a philosopher_n laugh_v edat_fw-la epicurus_n discourse_v of_o god_n who_o providence_n he_o deny_v and_o no_o man_n have_v ever_o reason_n to_o endure_v to_o hear_v the_o atheist_n diagoras_n dispute_v of_o divine_a matter_n how_o then_o can_v papist_n esteem_v of_o this_o man_n idle_a directory_n and_o discourse_n in_o religion_n that_o be_v declare_v a_o atheist_n and_o a_o man_n all_o void_a of_o piety_n and_o religion_n and_o yet_o be_v he_o not_o more_o impious_a then_o ridiculous_a ignorant_a and_o malicious_a chap._n v._o of_o diverse_a ridiculous_a and_o childish_a error_n and_o mistake_n of_o the_o suppose_a great_a doctor_n parson_n it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o hypocrite_n to_o espy_v a_o mote_n in_o another_o man_n eye_n but_o they_o see_v not_o the_o beam_n that_o be_v in_o their_o own_o eye_n this_o we_o may_v see_v verify_v in_o our_o captious_a adversary_n for_o albeit_o curious_a in_o espy_v fault_n in_o other_o yet_o can_v he_o not_o avoid_v gross_a error_n in_o himself_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o wardword_n in_o the_o three_o person_n praise_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a man_n and_o yet_o present_o after_o forget_v himself_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o in_o the_o first_o person_n where_o he_o talk_v of_o enlarge_n himself_o and_o of_o his_o rejoinder_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o epistle_n fol._n 3._o b._n he_o suppose_v that_o these_o word_n non_fw-la tam_fw-la despectum_fw-la quàm_fw-la vexatum_fw-la dimittam_fw-la be_v take_v out_o of_o tully_n second_n philippicke_a but_o the_o oration_n be_v read_v over_o will_v discover_v the_o truant_n error_n for_o in_o all_o that_o oration_n there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n it_o may_v be_v he_o have_v read_v some_o such_o like_a word_n in_o tully_n oration_n in_o vatinium_fw-la but_o the_o poor_a idiot_n can_v not_o hit_v upon_o it_o fol._n 5._o b._n he_o say_v that_o this_o word_n maxim_n the_o end_n of_o do_v any_o thing_n be_v first_o in_o our_o intention_n and_o last_o in_o performance_n and_o execution_n be_v take_v out_o of_o aristotle_n but_o the_o great_a doctor_n can_v tell_v where_o to_o find_v it_o and_o when_o he_o seek_v it_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o mistake_v late_a writer_n for_o aristotle_n fol._n 13._o b._n he_o tell_v we_o that_o irenaeus_n lib._n 2._o c._n 54._o and_o lib._n 4._o c._n 2._o do_v call_v heresy_n pandoram_fw-la whereas_o he_o lib._n 2._o c._n 54._o do_v not_o once_o name_v pandoram_fw-la and_o lib._n 2._o c._n 55._o and_o lib._n 4._o c._n 2._o where_o he_o have_v that_o word_n he_o do_v not_o by_o pandora_n understand_v heresy_n but_o matrem_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la conceptionis_fw-la the_o mother_n of_o spiritual_a conception_n of_o who_o and_o their_o saviour_n the_o valentinian_o imagine_v spiritual_a creature_n to_o have_v their_o original_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o
the_o thing_n rule_v with_o the_o rule_n in_o the_o warneword_n fol._n 100_o he_o say_v the_o sum_n and_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n deliver_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o miracle_n &_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n profit_n for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o unless_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o tradition_n ecclesiastical_a be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o confirm_v by_o mracle_n they_o be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 7._o psal_n 7._o parson_n therefore_o be_v like_a to_o those_o which_o dig_v pit_n for_o other_o but_o fall_v into_o they_o themselves_o he_o have_v prepare_v weapon_n for_o we_o but_o like_o a_o mad_a sot_n have_v hurt_v himself_o with_o the_o same_o final_o captain_n cowbucke_n like_o a_o noble_a woodcock_n be_v catch_v in_o his_o own_o springe_n chap._n ix_o a_o catalogue_n of_o certain_a principal_a lie_n utter_v by_o robert_n parson_n in_o his_o late_a warne-word_n 4._o 1._o tim._n 4._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v speak_v evident_o that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o shall_v give_v heed_n unto_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o speak_v lie_n through_o hypocrisy_n and_o have_v their_o conscience_n burn_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n which_o prophecy_n as_o in_o other_o heretic_n so_o especial_o in_o the_o papist_n we_o may_v see_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o to_o be_v fulfil_v for_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o record_v in_o holy_a scripture_n have_v give_v heed_n to_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o beléeve_v the_o trash_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o lie_v legend_n and_o thereupon_o have_v found_v their_o prohibition_n of_o certain_a meat_n and_o marriage_n and_o such_o like_a doctrine_n of_o devil_n confirm_v their_o opinion_n with_o gross_a lie_n utter_v with_o sear_a conscience_n and_o brazen_a face_n contrary_a to_o all_o show_n of_o truth_n they_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n of_o doctor_n and_o father_n but_o be_v false_a teacher_n and_o unkind_a traitor_n 4._o in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o and_o as_o theodoret_n say_v of_o certain_a heretic_n christianorum_fw-la sibi_fw-la appellatione_fw-la imposita_fw-la apertè_fw-la docent_fw-la contraria_fw-la call_v themselves_o christian_n or_o catholic_n they_o open_o teach_v contrary_a i_o can_v specify_v it_o by_o caesar_n baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n by_o sander_n stapleton_n and_o diverse_a other_o principal_a author_n of_o the_o popish_a sect_n but_o i_o will_v not_o match_v any_o man_n of_o note_n with_o so_o notorious_a a_o dolt_n and_o so_o base_a a_o swad_n as_o robert_n parson_n be_v of_o who_o we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v though_o not_o much_o to_o his_o commendation_n the_o only_a example_n of_o parson_n and_o that_o in_o one_o of_o his_o farthel_n of_o lie_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o rip_v up_o shall_v show_v they_o to_o be_v notorious_a and_o bold_a liar_n the_o devilish_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o friar_n we_o have_v touch_v before_o and_o shall_v have_v often_o occasion_n to_o mention_v in_o the_o front_n of_o his_o book_n he_o promise_v the_o issue_n of_o three_o former_a treatise_n and_o in_o the_o second_o page_n talk_v of_o eight_o encounter_n but_o he_o falsifi_v his_o promise_n and_o lie_v gross_o for_o of_o the_o three_o former_a treatise_n he_o touch_v only_o two_o chapter_n and_o of_o eight_o encounter_n enter_v only_o upon_o two_o further_o he_o decline_v the_o true_a issue_n of_o matter_n and_o run_v bias_n like_o a_o warp_a bowl_n of_o dudgeon_n into_o impertinent_a &_o idle_a question_n do_v he_o not_o therefore_o as_o hierom_n say_v of_o one_o 6●_n hieron_n epist_n 6●_n make_v shipwwracke_n in_o the_o port_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o deliver_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o he_o wrack_v himself_o likewise_o think_v to_o wreak_v his_o malice_n upon_o we_o and_o begin_v with_o a_o gross_a lie_n there_o happen_v say_v he_o some_o few_o year_n past_a he_o note_v 1599_o in_o the_o margin_n as_o often_o also_o before_o a_o certain_a false_a alarm_n of_o a_o spanish_a invasion_n than_o say_v to_o be_v upon_o the_o sea_n towards_o england_n where_o i_o need_v not_o to_o note_v the_o idiotism_n of_o parson_n speech_n that_o talk_v of_o a_o spanish_a invasion_n upon_o the_o sea_n towards_o england_n be_v elsewhere_o note_v but_o only_o i_o will_v touch_v his_o impudency_n in_o lie_v and_o deny_v that_o about_o this_o time_n the_o spaniard_n be_v ready_a with_o force_n at_o the_o groin_n for_o the_o invasion_n of_o england_n and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o this_o be_v the_o occasion_n that_o move_v sir_n francis_n hastings_n to_o give_v warning_n to_o his_o country_n and_o also_o because_o the_o same_o show_v that_o parson_n be_v very_o sorry_a that_o any_o man_n be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o desseine_n of_o the_o spanish_a king_n and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o take_v we_o sleep_a and_o so_o close_o and_o priviliy_v cut_v his_o countryman_n throat_n i_o say_v then_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n most_o notorious_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o alarm_n give_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o spanish_a preparation_n anno_o 1598._o for_o a_o invasion_n of_o some_o part_n of_o england_n be_v false_a and_o prove_v it_o first_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o king_n who_o recover_v out_o of_o a_o trance_n and_o come_v to_o himself_o ask_v if_o the_o adelantado_n be_v go_v for_o england_n second_o by_o the_o provision_n of_o ship_n and_o man_n make_v at_o the_o groin_n and_o lisbon_n and_o which_o come_v thence_o shape_v their_o course_n for_o england_n albeit_o they_o be_v by_o wether_n beat_v back_o three_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o leake_n a_o mass_n priest_n that_o be_v deal_v withal_o to_o come_v for_o england_n four_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n in_o their_o reply_n to_o parson_n his_o libel_n fol._n 65._o &_o sequent_a who_o direct_o charge_v parson_n to_o be_v a_o solicitor_n of_o these_o pretend_a attempt_n anno_fw-la 1598._o five_o by_o parson_n his_o letter_n from_o rome_n to_o fitzherbert_n wherein_o he_o desire_v to_o understand_v the_o success_n of_o the_o fleet_n that_o anno_fw-la 1598._o be_v to_o go_v for_o england_n final_o by_o the_o adelantadoe_n proclamation_n make_v at_o the_o groin_n and_o whereof_o diverse_a print_a copy_n be_v to_o be_v disperse_v in_o england_n upon_o his_o arrival_n here_o the_o which_o for_o that_o it_o discover_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o spaniard_n and_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o english_a traitor_n i_o have_v think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o set_v down_o the_o whole_a tenor_n of_o the_o proclamation_n with_o some_o animadversion_n in_o the_o margin_n stile_n this_o seem_v to_o be_v parson_n his_o stile_n consider_v say_v the_o adelantado_n the_o obligation_n which_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n my_o lord_n and_o master_n have_v receive_v of_o god_n almighty_a to_o defend_v and_o protect_v his_o holy_a faith_n and_o the_o apostolical_a roman_a church_n he_o have_v procure_v by_o the_o best_a mean_n he_o can_v for_o to_o reduce_v to_o the_o true_a the_o popish_a religion_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o true_a ancient_a and_o true_a religion_n the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n as_o much_o as_o possible_o have_v be_v in_o his_o power_n and_o all_o have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o take_v away_o the_o ambition_n the_o goodly_a pretence_n of_o lewd_a ambition_n offence_n do_v against_o god_n in_o damage_n of_o the_o selfsame_o kingdom_n with_o scandal_n of_o whole_a christianity_n yea_o rather_o abuse_v the_o clemency_n and_o benignity_n of_o his_o vassal_n his_o the_o pope_n vassal_n catholic_a majesty_n the_o head_n and_o chief_a of_o the_o teacher_n the_o true_a teacher_n heretic_n which_o little_a fear_n god_n have_v take_v courage_n to_o extend_v their_o evil_a doctrine_n with_o the_o oppress_a of_o traitor_n of_o these_o cacolike_n be_v traitor_n catholic_n martyr_v they_o and_o by_o diverse_a way_n and_o mean_n take_v from_o they_o their_o life_n and_o good_n force_v they_o by_o truth_n by_o a_o manifest_a untruth_n and_o calumniation_n against_o the_o truth_n violence_n to_o follow_v their_o damnable_a sect_n and_o error_n which_o they_o have_v hardly_o do_v to_o the_o loss_n of_o many_o soul_n which_o consider_v his_o catholic_a majesty_n be_v determine_v to_o favour_n and_o protect_v these_o catholic_n which_o courageous_o have_v defend_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o not_o only_o those_o but_o papist_n but_o lurk_v and_o dissemble_v papist_n such_o also_o as_o by_o pusillanimity_n and_o humane_a respect_n have_v consent_v unto_o they_o force_v thereunto_o through_o the_o hard_a
direct_v against_o the_o dominican_n franciscan_n benedictines_n and_o ignatian_o and_o prove_v ignatian_n parson_n a_o lie_a person_n fol._n 66._o b._n he_o say_v that_o in_o s._n hieromes_n time_n the_o roman_a faith_n be_v account_v the_o general_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o this_o island_n have_v have_v twice_o participation_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n both_o manifest_a lie_n for_o as_o well_o may_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v the_o world_n as_o the_o roman_a faith_n the_o general_a catholic_a say_v again_o it_o be_v false_a that_o in_o old_a time_n we_o receive_v the_o roman_a faith_n that_o now_o be_v profess_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n for_o we_o receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n which_o not_o these_o roman_n that_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o the_o scum_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o old_a generouse_a roman_n profess_v fol._n 69._o he_o deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o public_a prayer_n shall_v be_v in_o a_o know_a language_n where_o bold_o he_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o ambrose_n chrysostome_n theophylact_n and_o other_o father_n that_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n to_o justify_v the_o use_n of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n in_o read_v of_o scripture_n he_o make_v two_o loud_a lie_n as_o i_o must_v needs_o tell_v he_o in_o english_a first_o he_o say_v that_o joan_n bourcher_n by_o read_v scripture_n in_o english_a learn_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o take_v flesh_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o that_o a_o tanner_n of_o colchester_n learned_a that_o baptism_n be_v worth_a nothing_o and_o that_o other_o fall_v into_o heresy_n by_o read_v scripture_n and_o second_o that_o every_o man_n light_o understand_v somewhat_o of_o the_o latin_a tongue_n both_o utter_o untrue_a for_o neither_o do_v the_o vulgar_a people_n among_o the_o french_a or_o italian_n understand_v latin_n nor_o do_v christian_n rather_o now_o fall_v into_o error_n by_o read_v vulgar_a scripture_n than_o the_o old_a greek_n and_o roman_n that_o read_v scripture_n in_o greek_a and_o latin_n but_o rather_o therefore_o do_v they_o err_v for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o read_v they_o diligent_o or_o reverent_o fol._n 71._o he_o say_v we_o teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v perilous_a let_v he_o therefore_o name_v those_o which_o have_v commit_v this_o fault_n or_o else_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o perilous_a liar_n fol._n 79._o he_o can_v be_v content_a to_o lie_v where_o he_o talk_v of_o matter_n of_o charge_n but_o will_v needs_o have_v i_o testify_v matter_n which_o i_o never_o think_v i_o may_v as_o well_o make_v he_o speak_v all_o villainy_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o i_o will_v not_o now_o use_v the_o testimony_n of_o so_o bad_a a_o fellow_n that_o which_o he_o tell_v of_o the_o pope_n exaction_n out_o of_o great_a benefice_n only_o 11_o encon_n 1._o c._n 11_o and_o of_o his_o employment_n of_o money_n against_o the_o turk_n be_v mere_a leasing_n for_o he_o take_v by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o both_o of_o great_a and_o little_a and_o rather_o destroy_v christian_n then_o turk_n fol._n 89._o he_o exclaim_v and_o say_v what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o this_o man_n that_o make_v all_o his_o ancestor_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o and_o the_o ancestor_n of_o her_o majesty_n her_o father_n and_o grandfather_n and_o the_o rest_n mere_a infidel_n i_o answer_v in_o his_o own_o form_n what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o this_o beast_n that_o lie_v as_o fast_o as_o a_o dog_n can_v trot_v my_o word_n that_o he_o set_v down_o refute_v he_o for_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o all_o but_o of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o christian_n of_o former_a time_n and_o of_o their_o ignorance_n i_o have_v bring_v sufficient_a proof_n if_o then_o those_o that_o lie_v deserve_v cudgel_n as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o half_a a_o load_n of_o wood_n that_o will_v serve_v for_o the_o bastonade_v of_o this_o brutish_a and_o senseless_a beast_n fol._n 99_o by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v evident_a say_v parson_n that_o his_o rule_n consist_v of_o the_o consent_n and_o establishment_n of_o certain_a man_n in_o england_n what_o to_o believe_v which_o be_v a_o different_a matter_n from_o scripture_n but_o whatsoever_o he_o think_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o keep_v no_o rule_n in_o speak_v untruth_n for_o albeit_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o every_o private_a man_n in_o england_n be_v to_o follow_v be_v establish_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n yet_o i_o say_v not_o nor_o do_v it_o follow_v of_o these_o word_n that_o the_o consent_n of_o man_n be_v our_o rule_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o general_a rule_n that_o all_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o follow_v and_o because_o every_o private_a man_n understand_v not_o all_o point_n of_o himself_o therefore_o the_o church_n to_o help_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o ignorant_a have_v gather_v the_o sum_n of_o faith_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o propose_v the_o same_o as_o conclusion_n thence_o deduce_v for_o private_a man_n to_o follow_v fol._n 105._o like_o a_o shameless_a beast_n he_o say_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o l._n cunctos_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n &_o fid_fw-we cath._n remit_v themselves_o to_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o to_o damasus_n the_o pope_n belief_n and_o that_o they_o determine_v nothing_o of_o religion_n both_o which_o assertion_n be_v matter_n utter_o false_a for_o first_o they_o remit_v man_n not_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n or_o to_o damasus_n his_o belief_n but_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n next_o they_o determine_v that_o man_n shall_v follow_v that_o faith_n and_o declare_v what_o the_o faith_n be_v cunctos_fw-la populos_fw-la say_v they_o quos_fw-la clementiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la regit_fw-la imperium_fw-la in_fw-la tali_fw-la volumus_fw-la religione_fw-la versari_fw-la quam_fw-la diwm_fw-la petrum_fw-la apostolum_n tradidisse_fw-la romanis_n religio_fw-la usque_fw-la adhuc_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la insinuata_fw-la declarat_fw-la quamque_fw-la pontificem_fw-la damasum_fw-la sequi_fw-la claret_n &_o petrum_fw-la alexandria_n episcopum_fw-la virum_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la sanctitatis_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la secundùm_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la disciplinam_fw-la euangelicamque_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la patris_fw-la &_o filii_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la unam_fw-la deitatem_fw-la sub_fw-la pari_fw-la maiestate_fw-la &_o sub_fw-la pia_fw-la trinitate_fw-la credamus_fw-la but_o be_v any_o to_o follow_v damasus_n his_o belief_n what_o be_v that_o to_o late_a pope_n that_o scarce_o beléeve_v in_o god_n and_o be_v more_o like_a to_o the_o grand_a turk_n then_o to_o damasus_n in_o the_o same_o leaf_n he_o tell_v also_o many_o other_o gross_a lie_n as_o for_o example_n that_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v receive_v by_o peter_n whereas_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o former_a law_n say_v that_o peter_n deliver_v christian_n religion_n to_o the_o roman_n second_o that_o the_o emperor_n law_n declare_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a governor_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n account_v he_o for_o their_o head_n and_o three_o that_o silvester_n confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a matter_n most_o sottish_a and_o blunt_o and_o false_o affirm_v for_o in_o that_o law_n there_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n general_a headship_n neither_o need_v the_o act_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n any_o confirmation_n of_o silvester_n in_o his_o second_o encounter_n chap._n 2._o it_o seem_v he_o have_v put_v on_o his_o vizour_n of_o impudence_n tell_v lie_n upon_o report_n without_o all_o shame_n or_o proof_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o day_n he_o say_v that_o a_o certain_a catholic_a man_n in_o louth_n in_o lincolnshire_n be_v put_v to_o death_n be_v bait_v in_o a_o bear_v skin_n and_o that_o the_o same_o thereof_o be_v yet_o fresh_a in_o louth_n matter_n very_o false_a as_o all_o the_o old_a man_n in_o louth_n will_v testify_v upon_o their_o oath_n further_o the_o same_o be_v so_o improbable_a as_o nothing_o more_o for_o neither_o can_v the_o party_n that_o be_v so_o put_v to_o death_n nor_o the_o judge_n or_o executioner_n or_o party_n present_v be_v name_v nay_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o any_o be_v put_v to_o death_n at_o louth_n at_o that_o time_n albeit_o some_o of_o louth_n be_v in_o danger_n for_o the_o rebellion_n as_o be_v yet_o remember_v parson_n also_o must_v tell_v how_o any_o dare_v put_v man_n to_o death_n contrary_a to_o law_n &_o who_o they_o be_v knowing_z that_o the_o very_a rebel_n be_v not_o execute_v without_o trial_n another_o like_a lie_n he_o father_v upon_o sir_n edw._n carew_n brother_n to_o the_o lord_n chamberlain_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v report_v that_o certain_a noble_n or_o gentleman_n bait_v a_o certain_a cacolike_a man_n with_o spaniel_n but_o what_o if_o the_o lord_n
be_v invisible_a or_o impalpable_a or_o that_o there_o be_v just_a seven_o sacrament_n and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o and_o that_o christian_n receive_v christ_n flesh_n with_o their_o tooth_n and_o mouth_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o he_o have_v two_o sword_n or_o that_o any_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o that_o devil_n torment_n soul_n in_o purgatory_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n deliver_v soul_n from_o those_o torment_n or_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popery_n now_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v more_o absurd_a then_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n can_v eat_v himself_o as_o the_o masspriest_n say_v christ_n do_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n nay_o that_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o hog_n can_v eat_v christ_n body_n or_o that_o a_o spider_n can_v be_v drown_v in_o his_o blood_n which_o save_v all_o destroy_v none_o that_o can_v receive_v it_o again_o what_o be_v more_o senseless_a then_o to_o adore_v cross_n and_o dumb_a image_n which_o neither_o see_v nor_o hear_v nor_o move_v and_o who_o honour_n be_v not_o see_v or_o know_v of_o those_o saint_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o aught_o we_o know_v three_o what_o be_v more_o inconvenient_a then_o to_o make_v a_o blind_a pope_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o the_o most_o part_n supreme_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n can_v blind_a man_n judge_v of_o colour_n or_o ignorant_a atheist_n of_o religion_n four_o what_o be_v more_o blasphemous_a then_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o we_o be_v not_o authentical_a unless_o the_o pope_n consign_v they_o unto_o we_o shall_v not_o truth_n be_v truth_n unless_o it_o please_v the_o pope_n to_o say_v it_o final_o see_v faith_n ought_v to_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o build_v upon_o ground_n most_o certain_a the_o popish_a religion_n must_v needs_o be_v a_o absurd_a faith_n and_o a_o false_a religion_n that_o be_v build_v upon_o tradition_n as_o well_o as_o scripture_n of_o which_o tradition_n the_o papist_n can_v yield_v no_o certain_a proof_n but_o be_v drive_v to_o allege_v either_o lie_a legend_n or_o old_a motheaten_a missal_n or_o uncertain_a custom_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o allege_v infinite_a such_o like_a absurdity_n of_o which_o this_o survey_a k._n have_v very_o foolish_o offer_v we_o occasion_n to_o discourse_v at_o large_a he_o do_v also_o very_o simple_o talk_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n survey_v li._n 4._o c._n 2._o for_o if_o papist_n say_v true_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o offer_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o that_o every_o external_a sacrifice_n require_v a_o real_a destruction_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o massmonger_n do_v real_o destroy_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 2._o say_v that_o a_o external_a sacrifice_n do_v require_v a_o real_a destruction_n requirit_fw-la realem_fw-la destructionem_fw-la be_v then_o this_o fellow_n wise_a trow_v you_o to_o talk_v of_o this_o brave_a sacrifice_n further_o do_v we_o think_v he_o wise_a that_o in_o a_o book_n offer_v to_o the_o king_n do_v rail_v on_o the_o king_n religion_n say_v that_o it_o lead_v unto_o atheism_n final_o it_o be_v a_o note_n of_o desperate_a folly_n to_o affirm_v that_o our_o religion_n lead_v to_o atheism_n for_o want_v of_o a_o pope_n or_o for_o want_n of_o the_o popish_a mass_n or_o sacrifice_n the_o contrary_a hereof_o rather_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v against_o the_o popish_a religion_n wherein_o as_o we_o may_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o adversary_n own_o confession_n in_o c._n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o the_o pope_n may_v lead_v with_o he_o thousand_o of_o soul_n into_o hell_n the_o mass_n also_o be_v a_o mass_n and_o sink_v of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n neither_o be_v any_o thing_n more_o repugnant_a to_o christ_n only_a sacrifice_n than_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n modesty_n he_o show_v none_o with_o a_o face_n as_o hard_o as_o a_o lopster_n affirm_v that_o we_o teach_v that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o despoil_v christ_n of_o his_o divinity_n that_o we_o wrong_v he_o in_o his_o office_n of_o redemption_n and_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o title_n of_o lawgiver_n and_o priest_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n dispair_v now_o what_o great_a impudence_n can_v be_v imagine_v then_o to_o ascribe_v that_o to_o we_o which_o we_o utter_o deny_v and_o disclaim_v nay_o we_o pronounce_v he_o accurse_v whosoever_o shall_v hold_v any_o of_o these_o point_n but_o the_o papist_n in_o some_o thing_n rub_v very_o near_o upon_o these_o rock_n &_o namely_o where_o they_o give_v to_o every_o man_n power_n to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o yield_v that_o other_o beside_o christ_n may_v be_v call_v redéemer_n and_o make_v the_o pope_n a_o lawgiver_n able_a to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n and_o give_v power_n to_o the_o priest_n to_o intercede_v for_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o accept_v it_o as_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n impudent_o also_o he_o beli_v we_o &_o rail_v upon_o we_o say_v that_o we_o make_v every_o private_a man_n spirit_n supreme_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o that_o we_o reject_v father_n &_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o overthrow_v all_o religion_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o only_o rail_v upon_o we_o but_o also_o upon_o scripture_n where_o he_o say_v that_o sound_v ourselves_o only_o on_o scripture_n we_o open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n as_o if_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o found_v their_o faith_n upon_o holy_a scripture_n only_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o all_o heresy_n or_o as_o if_o this_o can_v be_v speak_v without_o disgrace_n to_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o that_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n do_v open_v a_o gate_n to_o all_o heresy_n final_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o title_n of_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o great_a monarch_n of_o heaven_n be_v but_o a_o base_a fugitive_a renegued_a companion_n set_v on_o by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o suppost_n to_o rail_v at_o religion_n and_o the_o professor_n thereof_o and_o lie_v without_o rule_n or_o order_n his_o want_n of_o learning_n do_v every_o where_n appear_v throughout_o his_o whole_a survey_v the_o scripture_n he_o cit_v very_o rare_o the_o father_n he_o mistake_v and_o misalleage_v in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n he_o be_v but_o a_o novice_n nay_o albeit_o he_o talk_v much_o of_o our_o religion_n yet_o he_o understand_v not_o what_o we_o profess_v what_o we_o reject_v final_o although_o the_o fellow_n be_v but_o a_o poor_a translator_n and_o collector_n of_o other_o man_n slander_n yet_o can_v he_o not_o well_o relate_v that_o which_o be_v translate_v out_o of_o other_o his_o principal_a witness_n be_v staphilus_n cochleus_n bolser_n nicol_n bear_v stapleton_n surius_n and_o such_o like_a rail_n and_o base_a author_n be_v it_o then_o likely_a that_o he_o shall_v show_v learning_n that_o be_v whole_o conversant_a in_o these_o trifle_a author_n devoid_a either_o of_o learning_n or_o else_o of_o all_o religion_n and_o honesty_n and_o all_o this_o god_n willing_a shall_v by_o many_o particular_n be_v verify_v by_o those_o who_o already_o have_v undertake_v to_o control_v his_o survey_v and_o to_o examine_v every_o article_n of_o this_o lewd_a libel_n not_o that_o such_o a_o ass_n head_n deserve_v any_o curious_a wash_n but_o because_o such_o a_o bark_a cur_n dog_n will_v be_v silence_v with_o a_o sharp_a censure_n it_o rest_v now_o that_o i_o speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o more_o of_o walpool_n &_o his_o confutation_n the_o man_n be_v a_o special_a friend_n of_o i_o albeit_o upon_o very_o small_a acquaintance_n a_o cunning_a triacle_n seller_n also_o a_o montbank_n &_o a_o master_n empoisoner_n as_o before_o be_v declare_v this_o only_a i_o forget_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o his_o brain_n be_v full_a of_o quicksilver_n his_o memory_n like_o a_o old_a leather_n budget_n his_o crown_n like_o the_o posterior_n part_n of_o a_o ape_n and_o his_o head_n like_o the_o knop_n of_o the_o handle_n of_o a_o gittern_n with_o two_o string_n if_o you_o meet_v any_o such_o fellow_n in_o the_o kitchen_n of_o the_o romish_a college_n of_o english_a boy_n commend_v we_o to_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o that_o we_o have_v at_o leisure_n peruse_v his_o mirificall_a confutation_n and_o therefore_o now_o he_o may_v bestow_v it_o upon_o the_o cook_n to_o stop_v his_o bottle_n the_o stile_n bit_v like_o pepper_n and_o therefore_o may_v do_v some_o good_a service_n there_o only_o thus_o much_o i_o must_v tell_v he_o that_o his_o word_n be_v too_o high_a
time_n they_o call_v such_o as_o allow_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n sectatores_fw-la libidinum_fw-la &_o praeceptores_fw-la vitiorum_fw-la that_o be_v follower_n of_o lust_n and_o teacher_n of_o vice_n albeit_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v marriage_n to_o be_v honourable_a in_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n they_o dissolve_v such_o marriage_n albeit_o christ_n teach_v that_o man_n be_v not_o to_o separate_v they_o who_o god_n have_v join_v together_o their_o fast_n they_o place_v in_o eat_v of_o fish_n and_o not_o in_o abstinence_n from_o all_o sustenance_n as_o the_o ancient_a father_n by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v teach_v some_o count_v it_o as_o mortal_a sin_n to_o eat_v flesh_n on_o friday_n as_o to_o kill_v a_o man_n and_o that_o a_o priest_n do_v sin_n less_o in_o commit_v fornication_n then_o in_o match_v himself_o in_o honest_a marriage_n and_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o fornication_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o not_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n they_o tolerate_v common_a whore_n as_o do_v simon_n magus_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o now_o in_o rome_n the_o pope_n notwithstanding_o his_o pretend_a holiness_n receive_v a_o tribute_n from_o they_o they_o do_v also_o sell_v mass_n imposition_n of_o hand_n benefice_n and_o make_v money_n of_o their_o god_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o their_o religion_n which_o savour_v of_o the_o heresy_n of_o simon_n magus_n venalia_fw-la nobis_fw-la say_v mantuan_n templa_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la altaria_fw-la sacra_fw-la coronae_fw-la ignis_fw-la thura_fw-la preces_fw-la coelum_fw-la est_fw-la venale_n deusque_fw-la that_o be_v church_n priest_n altar_n sacrament_n crown_n fire_n incense_n prayer_n yea_o heaven_n and_o god_n himself_o be_v set_v to_o sale_n among_o us._n brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n cap._n 232._o say_v priest_n be_v worse_o than_o judas_n for_o that_o he_o sell_v christ_n for_o money_n but_o they_o barter_v he_o for_o all_o commodity_n 23._o irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o advers_a haeres_fw-la cap._n 23._o as_o the_o basilidian_o worship_v image_n use_v enchantment_n and_o superstitious_a adjuration_n so_o do_v they_o worship_v not_o only_o material_a image_n but_o also_o their_o fantastical_a imagination_n they_o also_o exorcise_v water_n and_o salt_n say_v exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la aquae_fw-la &_o again_o exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la salis_fw-la with_o the_o heretic_n call_v staurolatrae_n they_o worship_v the_o cross_n with_o the_o angelike_n they_o serve_v and_o worship_v angel_n with_o the_o armenian_n they_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o nazarite_n mingle_v jewish_a ceremony_n with_o christian_n religion_n so_o do_v papist_n borrow_v from_o they_o their_o paschal_n lamb_n their_o jubiley_n their_o priestly_a apparel_n their_o altar_n their_o leviticall_a rite_n and_o diverse_a other_o jewish_a ceremony_n irenaeus_n lib._n 1._o advers_a haeres_fw-la cap._n 30._o say_v that_o martion_n and_o saturninus_n first_o teach_v abstinence_n from_o live_a creature_n from_o who_o the_o papist_n seem_v to_o have_v borrow_v their_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n as_o less_o holy_a than_o other_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la never_o appoint_v what_o day_n we_o ought_v to_o fast_o and_o what_o not_o the_o papist_n therefore_o have_v their_o fast_n from_o other_o then_o from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n from_o the_o manicheys_n they_o borrow_v their_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o chapt._n relatum_fw-la and_o comperimus_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi and_o by_o leo_n his_o four_o sermon_n the_o quadrage_n the_o helcesaites_n make_v christ_n in_o heaven_n to_o differ_v from_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o say_v theodoret_n haeret_fw-la fabul_a lib._n 3._o cap._n de_fw-fr helcesaeis_n his_o word_n be_v these_o christum_fw-la non_fw-la unum_fw-la dicunt_fw-la sed_fw-la hunc_fw-la quidem_fw-la infernè_fw-la illum_fw-la verò_fw-la supernè_fw-la so_o likewise_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o christ_n body_n in_o heaven_n be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a but_o not_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o pelagian_n they_o concur_v in_o many_o point_n as_o i_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o my_o late_a challenge_n hoc_fw-la pelagiani_n laudent_fw-la dicere_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi perseverantiae_fw-la c._n 5._o hominem_fw-la iustum_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la vita_fw-la nullum_fw-la habere_fw-la peccatum_fw-la now_o how_o can_v they_o clear_v themselves_o from_o this_o that_o hold_v that_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o the_o apostle_n paul_n deny_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n the_o papist_n have_v teach_v quite_o contrary_a he_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o glory_v in_o our_o work_n they_o say_v quite_o contrary_a that_o man_n may_v glory_v in_o their_o work_n he_o show_v that_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n be_v also_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o blood_n they_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o all_o the_o communicant_n beside_o the_o priest_n our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n say_v accipite_fw-la manducate_v that_o be_v take_v and_o eat_v these_o imagine_v that_o he_o offer_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n real_o and_o corporal_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o that_o he_o appoint_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n actual_o to_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o not_o always_o to_o be_v sacramental_o and_o spiritual_o receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n the_o papist_n teach_v that_o wicked_a man_n reprobate_n and_o devil_n may_v have_v true_a faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o true_a faith_n justifi_v &_o that_o they_o which_o have_v it_o live_v by_o faith_n common_o they_o hold_v that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a then_o can_v not_o faith_n subsist_v without_o charity_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o faith_n as_o faith_n do_v make_v the_o just_a to_o live_v and_o ancient_a christian_n be_v always_o ignorant_a of_o these_o philosophical_a fancy_n they_o hold_v that_o diverse_a sin_n be_v commit_v which_o be_v not_o forbid_v by_o god_n law_n but_o this_o show_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o they_o suppose_v be_v not_o perfect_a and_o that_o the_o law_n of_o man_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o of_o god_n law_n bound_v the_o conscience_n as_o well_o as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n final_o the_o very_a foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n be_v erroneous_a the_o same_o be_v found_v partly_o upon_o the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n partly_o upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n contain_v partly_o in_o their_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n partly_o in_o their_o fabulous_a legend_n and_o partly_o in_o the_o chest_n of_o the_o pope_n breast_n and_o partly_o upon_o the_o old_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o the_o romanist_n hold_v to_o be_v authentical_a and_o partly_o upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o since_o it_o please_v god_n to_o put_v into_o her_o majesty_n royal_a heart_n a_o resolution_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n that_o be_v so_o much_o deform_v by_o the_o pharisaical_a and_o superstitious_a addition_n of_o the_o papist_n &_o to_o restore_v religion_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostles_n &_o prophet_n not_o only_o all_o former_a heresy_n &_o error_n be_v abolish_v but_o also_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v restore_v the_o which_o be_v apparent_a not_o only_o by_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v but_o also_o by_o our_o public_a confession_n and_o apology_n which_o we_o have_v publish_v at_o diverse_a time_n and_o in_o part_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o secret_a confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o albeit_o they_o will_v glad_o cavil_v against_o our_o confession_n yet_o they_o take_v their_o ground_n common_o out_o of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la caluin_n melancthon_n and_o other_o not_o often_o meddle_v with_o our_o confession_n diverse_a of_o they_o also_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v we_o negative_a divine_n which_o argue_v that_o so_o much_o as_o we_o hold_v positive_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n confess_v by_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o and_o that_o we_o bring_v in_o no_o new_a faith_n but_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v hold_v and_o maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n desire_v only_o that_o the_o positive_a error_n heresy_n and_o superstition_n of_o papist_n may_v be_v abolish_v wherefore_o as_o christian_n in_o time_n pass_v extol_v constantine_n the_o great_a 23._o euseb_n hist_o li._n 10._o cap._n 5._o euseb_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la constant_n lib._n 3._o c._n 23._o that_o give_v liberty_n to_o all_o his_o subject_n to_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n that_o assemble_v synod_n of_o bishop_n and_o confirm_v their_o decree_n so_o
queen_n deal_v just_o defend_v herself_o against_o public_a enemy_n that_o seek_v her_o destruction_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o her_o people_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o land_n have_v not_o increase_v in_o wealth_n in_o the_o late_a queen_n time_n he_o object_v 11._o 1._o encountr_n cap._n 11._o that_o the_o nobility_n and_o gentry_n keep_v not_o so_o great_a house_n nor_o family_n as_o in_o time_n past_a but_o the_o witless_a fellow_n speak_v against_o himself_o for_o the_o less_o be_v spend_v the_o more_o remain_v but_o that_o many_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v as_o great_a house_n as_o in_o time_n past_a it_o can_v be_v deny_v further_o if_o he_o know_v the_o state_n of_o the_o country_n he_o may_v know_v that_o many_o house_n be_v build_v and_o keep_v where_o in_o time_n pass_v there_o be_v neither_o housekeeping_a nor_o house_n he_o tell_v we_o further_o of_o tribute_n and_o other_o duty_n but_o his_o talk_n and_o deal_v therein_o be_v but_o frivolous_a for_o compare_v all_o that_o be_v pay_v in_o subsidy_n and_o other_o duty_n with_o former_a payment_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o half_a of_o that_o which_o be_v exact_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o spend_v in_o superstition_n and_o vain_a devise_n but_o be_v our_o subsidy_n great_a yet_o be_v bestow_v upon_o our_o own_o soldier_n and_o people_n the_o land_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o poor_a but_o rather_o poor_a man_n employ_v by_o those_o that_o can_v well_o spare_v all_o which_o they_o give_v and_o more_o final_o he_o will_v insinuate_v that_o increase_n of_o people_n be_v no_o blessing_n see_v the_o turk_n by_o multitude_n of_o wife_n have_v many_o child_n and_o holy_a eunuch_n be_v commend_v that_o have_v no_o child_n he_o do_v also_o under_o hand_n glance_n at_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n but_o first_o he_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v direct_o teach_v viz._n that_o child_n be_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n do_v promise_v the_o multiplication_n of_o his_o seed_n to_o abraham_n as_o a_o great_a blessing_n second_o albeit_o particular_a man_n that_o keep_v themselves_o chaste_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v commend_v yet_o that_o concern_v the_o lecherous_a and_o bougerly_a masspriest_n and_o monk_n nothing_o that_o rather_o forswear_v marriage_n then_o keep_v themselves_o chaste_a neither_o be_v that_o a_o commendation_n to_o a_o whole_a state_n or_o kingdom_n if_o some_o live_v chaste_o three_o albeit_o turk_n have_v many_o wife_n yet_o god_n do_v not_o so_o bless_v they_o with_o child_n but_o that_o they_o be_v compel_v to_o use_v the_o child_n of_o christian_n and_o to_o exact_v a_o tribute_n of_o they_o to_o conclude_v this_o bastardly_a fellow_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v past_a shame_n to_o talk_v against_o marriage_n when_o himself_o be_v beget_v by_o a_o filthy_a priest_n and_o his_o consort_n wallow_v in_o all_o beastly_a abomination_n wherefore_o let_v the_o adversary_n storm_n and_o rage_n as_o much_o as_o they_o listen_v yet_o will_v we_o say_v and_o may_v say_v it_o most_o true_o that_o both_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o state_n have_v receive_v great_a blessing_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n late_a happy_a government_n and_o if_o nothing_o else_o yet_o the_o vain_a opposition_n of_o enemy_n and_o traitor_n may_v persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o not_o only_o their_o misliking_n do_v show_v that_o both_o the_o church_n and_o state_n be_v well_o order_v for_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v be_v better_o please_v but_o also_o their_o vain_a jangling_n and_o contradiction_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o object_v any_o thing_n which_o sound_v not_o to_o her_o majesty_n honour_n and_o high_a commendation_n confirm_v the_o same_o chap._n xiii_o parson_n his_o curse_a talk_n of_o curse_n of_o england_n by_o change_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n examine_v 14._o psal_n 14._o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o the_o foolish_a and_o wicked_a man_n of_o his_o time_n say_v that_o their_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n and_o afterward_o that_o their_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o bitterness_n the_o which_o we_o see_v verify_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o impious_a sect_n for_o their_o throat_n be_v wide_a as_o the_o grave_n and_o swallow_v the_o wealth_n of_o europe_n they_o also_o degorge_v out_o of_o they_o all_o the_o wickedness_n and_o villainy_n they_o can_v devise_v against_o the_o godly_a pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la and_o sixtus_n quintus_n accurse_v the_o queen_n robert_n parson_n follow_v their_o step_n rail_v upon_o she_o in_o diverse_a libel_n in_o his_o warn-word_n that_o be_v a_o complement_n of_o his_o foolery_n he_o say_v we_o receive_v no_o blessing_n by_o she_o but_o rather_o curse_n here_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o answer_v the_o bark_n of_o this_o curse_a hellhound_n and_o of_o his_o accurse_a companion_n in_o the_o first_o encounter_n of_o his_o wardword_n p._n 4._o he_o say_v we_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o general_a body_n of_o catholic_n in_o christendom_n but_o this_o shall_v have_v be_v prove_v if_o he_o will_v have_v any_o man_n to_o give_v he_o credit_n for_o we_o allege_v that_o the_o papist_n from_o who_o we_o be_v divide_v be_v no_o catholic_n believe_v the_o new_a doctrine_n of_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o lateran_n constance_n florence_n &_o trent_n &_o other_o friar_n &_o priest_n which_o neither_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o man_n nor_o in_o all_o time_n nor_o in_o all_o place_n which_o be_v the_o true_a property_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n next_o we_o offer_v to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v true_a catholic_n see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v apostolical_a and_o universal_o approve_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n confess_v by_o the_o papist_n until_o of_o late_a time_n if_o then_o this_o be_v a_o principal_a curse_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o catholic_n then_o do_v the_o same_o fall_n on_o parson_n his_o own_o head_n and_o upon_o his_o treacherous_a consort_n and_o not_o upon_o us._n second_o he_o say_v that_o we_o of_o england_n be_v divide_v from_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n abroad_o and_o from_o puritan_n &_o brownist_n and_o other_o like_a good_a fellow_n at_o home_n but_o this_o common_a jergon_n of_o papist_n be_v already_o answer_v for_o neither_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n zwinglians_n and_o caluinist_n nor_o can_v he_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o france_n germany_n or_o suizzerland_n or_o that_o one_o church_n oppugn_v another_o if_o any_o private_a man_n do_v maintain_v private_a opinion_n in_o doctrine_n as_o diverse_a german_n french_a and_o english_a do_v or_o else_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n among_o we_o concern_v ceremony_n and_o government_n that_o do_v no_o more_o make_v a_o schism_n in_o our_o church_n than_o the_o diverse_a rite_n of_o spanish_a french_a and_o italian_n and_o diverse_a opinion_n in_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n between_o old_a and_o new_a romish_a doctor_n make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o general_o we_o all_o agree_v in_o substance_n of_o faith_n &_o in_o rite_n &_o ceremony_n refer_v every_o church_n to_o their_o liberty_n in_o england_n public_o there_o be_v more_o uniformity_n in_o doctrine_n prayer_n &_o ceremony_n then_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n albeit_o some_o private_a man_n who_o parson_n use_v to_o call_v puritan_n dissent_v in_o some_o point_n as_o among_o the_o papist_n there_o be_v diverse_a that_o allow_v not_o all_o which_o they_o hold_v common_o but_o say_v he_o in_o his_o warne-word_n encont_n 1._o c._n 15._o the_o french_a german_n and_o scottish_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o english_a in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o four_o five_o and_o six_o and_o sequent_a chapter_n but_o if_o he_o have_v find_v any_o difference_n he_o will_v not_o have_v spare_v to_o set_v they_o down_o in_o the_o chapter_n mention_v he_o show_v not_o that_o we_o differ_v in_o any_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o substantial_a point_n of_o religion_n but_o rather_o in_o rite_n ceremony_n and_o some_o diverse_a interpretation_n of_o some_o word_n of_o scripture_n three_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n in_o religion_n and_o that_o as_o he_o foole-wise_o imagine_v because_o we_o have_v no_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o to_o direct_v our_o conscience_n and_o this_o he_o handle_v both_o in_o his_o wardword_n 1_o encontr_n and_o warnw._n 1._o enc_n c._n 15._o &_o 16._o and_o other_o place_n skip_v like_o a_o ape_n up_o a_o down_o without_o rule_n order_n or_o reason_n but_o while_o he_o talk_v of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v direct_a contrary_n to_o himself_o for_o in_o his_o wardw._n p._n 6._o
spiritualem_fw-la salutem_fw-la earum_fw-la sunt_fw-la facienda_fw-la &_o corrigenda_fw-la that_o be_v thou_o do_v ravish_v and_o take_v from_o i_o innumerable_a soul_n for_o thou_o send_v to_o hell_n almost_o all_o that_o come_v unto_o thy_o court_n because_o thou_o attend_v not_o those_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o my_o court_n because_o thou_o be_v a_o prelate_n and_o a_o shepherd_n of_o my_o sheep_n therefore_o it_o be_v thy_o fault_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o discreet_o the_o thing_n that_o for_o their_o soul_n health_n be_v to_o be_v do_v and_o perform_v and_o again_o papa_n qui_fw-la clamare_fw-la deberet_fw-la say_v brigit_fw-la venite_fw-la &_o invenietis_fw-la requiem_n animarum_fw-la vestrarum_fw-la clamat_fw-la 96._o 6._o brig_n 96._o venite_fw-la &_o videte_fw-la i_o in_fw-la pompa_fw-la &_o ambitione_n plusquam_fw-la salomonem_fw-la venite_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la meam_fw-la &_o exhaurite_fw-la bursas_fw-la vestras_fw-la &_o invenietis_fw-la perditionem_fw-la animarum_fw-la vestrarum_fw-la the_o pope_n which_o ought_v to_o cry_v come_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n to_o your_o soul_n cry_v come_v and_o see_v i_o advance_v in_o pomp_n and_o ambition_n above_o solomon_n come_v unto_o my_o court_n and_o empty_a your_o purse_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o destruction_n of_o your_o soul_n occam_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o dialogue_n confess_v the_o ignorance_n and_o unskilfulnesse_n of_o pope_n in_o scripture_n and_o say_v that_o no_o pope_n since_o innocent_a the_o three_o time_n be_v excellent_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o few_o pope_n study_n the_o law_n of_o god_n many_o study_n the_o law_n of_o man_n some_o study_n neither_o but_o give_v themselves_o to_o worldly_a delight_n quotidiè_fw-la perstrepunt_fw-la in_o palatio_fw-la leges_fw-la consid_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-la consid_fw-la say_v bernard_n sed_fw-la justiniani_fw-la non_fw-la domini_fw-la daily_o law_n sound_v in_o thy_o palace_n but_o the_o law_n of_o emperor_n not_o of_o the_o lord_n but_o now_o it_o be_v far_o worse_o for_o neither_o law_n nor_o reason_n be_v there_o to_o be_v hear_v but_o all_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o pope_n will_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o ridiculous_a thing_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o chief_a pastor_n that_o feed_v not_o all_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o chief_a judge_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n have_v neither_o learning_n nor_o judgement_n likewise_o the_o cardinal_n popish_a bishop_n and_o prelate_n be_v both_o unlearned_a and_o negligent_a for_o their_o learning_n i_o refer_v myself_o to_o experience_n and_o to_o diverse_a history_n that_o record_v their_o notorious_a ignorance_n their_o defect_n in_o preach_v be_v notorious_o know_v there_o be_v few_o of_o they_o but_o will_v take_v great_a scorn_n of_o it_o so_o far_o be_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o step_n of_o their_o ancestor_n lois_fw-fr mersilius_fw-la a_o augustinian_a friar_n as_o say_v poggius_n be_v ask_v what_o the_o two_o point_n of_o a_o bishop_n mitre_n signify_v answer_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v ask_v further_a what_o the_o two_o strop_n mean_v that_o hang_v down_o from_o the_o mitre_n on_o the_o bishop_n back_n say_v that_o the_o bishop_n know_v neither_o old_a nor_o new_a testament_n in_o ore_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la say_v he_o that_o write_v the_o treatise_n title_v onus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la est_fw-la lex_fw-la vanitatis_fw-la pro_fw-la lege_fw-la veritatis_fw-la the_o law_n of_o vanity_n be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o bishop_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o law_n of_o truth_n they_o shall_v build_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 10._o 2_o brig_n 10._o but_o as_o brigit_fw-la say_v they_o build_v the_o devil_n two_o city_n catherine_n of_o sienna_n cap._n 129._o say_v that_o unprofitable_a pastor_n do_v not_o drive_v the_o wolf_n from_o the_o sheep_n for_o that_o they_o want_v the_o dog_n of_o conscience_n and_o staff_n of_o justice_n she_o say_v also_o that_o they_o feed_v not_o their_o sheep_n in_o the_o pasture_n of_o salvation_n nor_o lead_v they_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n quid_fw-la hodiè_fw-la erant_fw-la episcopi_fw-la 1._o silvius_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la council_n basil_n lib._n 1._o say_v the_o cardinal_n of_o arles_n in_o the_o meeting_n at_o basil_n nisi_fw-la umbrae_fw-la quaedam_fw-la quid_fw-la plus_fw-la eye_n restabat_fw-la quàm_fw-la baculus_fw-la &_o mitra_fw-la what_o be_v bishop_n of_o our_o time_n but_o shadow_n what_o remain_v to_o they_o more_o than_o a_o staff_n and_o a_o mitre_n if_o any_o be_v more_o studious_a than_o other_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n but_o in_o law_n and_o matter_n of_o state_n and_o story_n the_o mass_n priest_n in_o time_n past_o use_v not_o to_o study_v scripture_n nor_o to_o preach_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o to_o expound_v in_o english_a the_o créed_a &_o law_n and_o some_o few_o thing_n more_o and_o that_o only_a at_o four_o time_n in_o the_o year_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o chapter_n ignorantia_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la de_fw-fr officio_fw-la archipresbyteri_fw-la in_o our_o provincial_a constitution_n now_o to_o do_v this_o little_a learning_n be_v require_v and_o less_o understanding_n clerk_n say_v math._n paris_n in_o the_o life_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n be_v then_o so_o unlearned_a that_o those_o that_o understand_v grammar_n be_v a_o wonderment_n to_o their_o fellow_n adeo_fw-la literatura_fw-la carebant_fw-la ut_fw-la caeteris_fw-la esset_fw-la stupori_fw-la qui_fw-la grammaticam_fw-la didicisset_fw-la the_o friar_n be_v then_o the_o only_a preacher_n upon_o who_o teach_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n whole_o rely_v unless_o percase_o some_o will_v suppose_v that_o faith_n may_v come_v by_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n at_o mass_n or_o on_o the_o crucifix_n and_o dumb_a image_n which_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v be_v teacher_n of_o vanity_n but_o these_o friar_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n unlearned_a as_o the_o sermon_n of_o menot_n maillard_n bromeyard_n &_o other_o will_v testify_v second_o they_o preach_v only_o in_o advent_a and_o lent_n &_o some_o few_o extraordinary_a time_n and_o three_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o sermon_n be_v either_o fable_n or_o else_o philosophical_a position_n or_o idle_a question_n little_o tend_v to_o edification_n or_o matter_n for_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o final_o they_o come_v without_o lawful_a mission_n to_o teach_v lie_v rather_o than_o the_o truth_n to_o destroy_v rather_o than_o to_o build_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n and_o division_n rather_o than_o to_o reduce_v man_n to_o love_n unity_n and_o concord_n dante_n show_v parad_a ca._n 29._o parad_a that_o the_o friar_n of_o his_o time_n wrest_a scripture_n and_o little_o regard_v they_o quando_fw-la e_fw-la posposta_fw-la la_fw-fr divina_fw-la scrittura_fw-la &_o quando_fw-la e_fw-la torta_fw-la again_o he_o say_v they_o desire_v their_o own_o glory_n and_o preach_v their_o own_o invention_n hide_v the_o gospel_n in_o silence_n per_fw-la apparer_fw-la ciascun_fw-la s'ingegna_fw-la &_o face_n sue_n inventioni_fw-la &_o quelle_fw-fr son_fw-fr trascorse_n dam_fw-la predicanti_fw-la è_fw-la l_o vangelio_fw-la si_fw-la tace_fw-la he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o tell_v fable_n and_o feed_v ignorant_a and_o simple_a people_n with_o wind_n no_o ha_o in_o fiorenza_n tanti_fw-la lupi_fw-la &_o bindi_n quante_n si_fw-la fat_a favole_fw-mi per_fw-mi anno_fw-la in_o pergamo_fw-la si_fw-la gridan_n quinci_fw-la &_o quindi_fw-la si_fw-la che_fw-it le_fw-fr pecorelle_fw-fr che_fw-mi non_fw-fr sanno_fw-mi tornan_n dal_n pasco_fw-la pasciute_v di_fw-it vento_fw-la agnellus_n general_a of_o the_o minorite_n long._n chronic._n citizent_n long._n hear_v the_o doctor_n dispute_n whether_o this_o proposition_n there_o be_v a_o god_n be_v true_a exclaim_v against_o this_o manner_n of_o deal_v and_o detest_v such_o question_n cornelius_z agrippa_z speaking_z of_o school_n doctor_n say_v scholast_n de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a c_o the_o theolog_n scholast_n that_o for_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v mere_a toy_n and_o humane_a word_n preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n and_o adulterate_v the_o word_n of_o god_n pro_fw-la euangelijs_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la meras_fw-la nugas_fw-la &_o humana_fw-la verba_fw-la crepant_fw-la praedicantes_fw-la evangelium_fw-la adulterantes_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la likewise_o do_v orthuinus_n gratius_n in_o praefat._n ante_fw-la lib._n petri_n de_fw-fr alliac_n de_fw-mi reform_v eccles_n speak_v against_o scholastical_a divinity_n say_v that_o the_o same_o be_v ingenious_a to_o lay_v burden_n on_o man_n soul_n and_o again_o cunning_a in_o devise_v excuse_n for_o sin_n est_fw-la ingeniosa_fw-la cum_fw-la ad_fw-la aggravandas_fw-la conscientias_fw-la tum_fw-la rursus_fw-la adinueniendas_fw-la excusationes_fw-la in_o peccatis_fw-la multo_fw-la solertissima_fw-la robertus_fw-la gallus_n vis_fw-la 34._o say_v that_o the_o friar_n preach_v idle_a and_o curious_a question_n be_v design_v by_o a_o vision_n wherein_o a_o man_n appear_v load_v with_o bread_n but_o gnaw_v a_o long_a stone_n with_o a_o snake_n head_n appear_v at_o either_o
end_n which_o resemblance_n be_v not_o altogether_o unfit_a see_v those_o that_o leave_v the_o instruction_n of_o scripture_n to_o scan_v such_o endless_a question_n leave_v bread_n to_o gnaw_v a_o stone_n be_v in_o the_o end_n sting_v with_o their_o own_o curiosity_n see_v then_o that_o the_o preach_n of_o popish_a doctor_n be_v so_o mix_v with_o idle_a tale_n endless_a question_n and_o philosophical_a discourse_n what_o profit_n can_v thereof_o redound_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n quid_fw-la athenis_fw-la &_o hierosolymis_fw-la say_v tertullian_n the_o prescript_n advers_a haeret_fw-la quid_fw-la academiae_fw-la &_o ecclesia_fw-la what_o concord_n be_v there_o between_o athens_n and_o jerusalem_n between_o philosopher_n school_n and_o the_o church_n 36._o decret_n c._n 36._o cardinal_n prat_n archbishop_n as_o he_o call_v himself_o of_o sens_n in_o france_n in_o his_o visitation_n make_v a_o law_n against_o such_o preacher_n as_o like_o vile_a buffoon_n rehearse_v ridiculous_a old_a wife_n tale_n to_o move_v their_o auditory_a to_o laughter_n which_o show_v that_o this_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v a_o common_a fault_n their_o preach_n be_v also_o very_o contentious_a and_o full_a of_o quarrel_n one_o call_v another_o heretic_n schismatic_n sacrilegious_a false_a prophet_n and_o raven_a wolf_n and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o scripture_n and_o argument_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o waldense_n in_o their_o confession_n to_o ladislaus_n vbertinus_n affirm_v that_o the_o locust_n mention_v in_o the_o apocalypse_n of_o s._n john_n do_v signify_v the_o beg_a friar_n because_o they_o be_v scurrilous_a and_o light_a skipiacke_n live_v carnal_o and_o gnaw_v the_o scripture_n quia_fw-la scurriles_fw-la leve_n volatiles_fw-la carnales_fw-la rodentes_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la commission_n for_o their_o preach_v these_o friar_n can_v show_v none_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o talk_v of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n paris_n schol._n paris_n apud_fw-la matth._n paris_n leave_v no_o room_n for_o such_o vermin_n the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n say_v that_o friar_n come_v without_o canonical_a mission_n that_o they_o preach_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n that_o they_o brag_v of_o their_o knowledge_n and_o preach_v for_o gain_v how_o then_o be_v it_o like_v that_o such_o fellow_n can_v build_v the_o church_n of_o god_n can_v we_o look_v for_o truth_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o false_a prophet_n or_o edification_n by_o they_o that_o come_v without_o call_v in_o the_o pprophecy_n of_o hildegardis_n we_o read_v that_o the_o principal_a study_n and_o endeavour_n of_o these_o false_a teacher_n shall_v be_v to_o resist_v true_a teacher_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o slaughter_n by_o their_o intelligence_n with_o great_a man_n see_v then_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o other_o teacher_n than_o these_o false_a apostle_n or_o rather_o seducer_n and_o hear_v nothing_o but_o tale_n and_o idle_a question_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v profit_v by_o such_o sermon_n much_o less_o therefore_o be_v it_o likely_a they_o shall_v grow_v in_o knowledge_n see_v neither_o their_o leader_n be_v desirous_a to_o teach_v they_o nor_o they_o to_o learn_v of_o their_o teacher_n linwood_n speak_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o créede_v say_v gloss_n c._n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-la sum_fw-la trin._n in_o gloss_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o lay_v and_o simple_a man_n to_o believe_v they_o with_o a_o implicit_a faith_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v believe_v they_o alijs_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la simplices_fw-la vel_fw-la laici_fw-la sufficit_fw-la quod_fw-la credant_fw-la eos_fw-la scil_n articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la implicitè_fw-fr id_fw-la est_fw-la sicut_fw-la docet_fw-la &_o credit_n sancta_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la he_o say_v also_o that_o such_o knowledge_n be_v sufficient_a for_o clerk_n that_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o maintain_v themselves_o at_o school_n as_o some_o suppose_n but_o suppose_v they_o can_v say_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v they_o and_o the_o rest_n which_o peccham_n in_o the_o constitution_n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-fr officio_fw-la archipres_fw-fr do_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n yet_o shall_v they_o be_v very_o ignorant_a for_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n beléeve_v and_o yet_o know_v nothing_o nor_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n thomas_n aquinas_n 2._o 2._o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o compare_v god_n people_n to_o ass_n and_o their_o teacher_n to_o ox_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o adhere_v to_o their_o superior_n because_o it_o be_v say_v job_n 1_o quòd_fw-la boves_fw-la arabant_fw-la &_o asinae_fw-la pascebantur_fw-la iuxta_fw-la eos_fw-la whereby_o it_o appear_v he_o require_v no_o great_a knowledge_n at_o lay_v man_n hand_n but_o will_v have_v they_o believe_v as_o their_o teacher_n do_v without_o further_a inquire_v he_o fetch_v his_o proof_n out_o of_o gregory_n but_o whence_o soever_o he_o draw_v it_o he_o use_v god_n people_n very_o rude_o that_o compare_v they_o to_o ass_n and_o ox_n yet_o thus_o much_o i_o be_o content_a to_o yield_v that_o the_o masspriest_n and_o their_o follower_n be_v like_o ox_n and_o ass_n firm_o link_v together_o by_o the_o pope_n cowherd_n and_o muleteer_n for_o the_o devil_n their_o master_n service_n the_o same_o man_n 2._o 2._o q._n 2._o art_n 5._o teach_v that_o lie_v man_n be_v to_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o no_o more_o explicitè_fw-fr the_o which_o be_v no_o point_n of_o deep_a learning_n &_o yet_o his_o scholar_n silvester_n in_o sum_n in_o verb._n fides_fw-la 6._o will_n not_o allow_v so_o much_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o as_o much_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o last_o end_n nec_fw-la tamen_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la cuilibet_fw-la say_v he_o explicitè_fw-fr credere_fw-la omnes_fw-la articulos_fw-la fidei_fw-la sed_fw-la quantum_fw-la sufficit_fw-la ad_fw-la dirigendum_fw-la in_o ultimum_fw-la finem_fw-la fides_fw-la apud_fw-la silu_a in_o verb._n fides_fw-la the_o author_n of_o summa_fw-la rosella_n say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o simple_a people_n and_o percase_o for_o lay_v man_n come_v to_o year_n and_o discretion_n to_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o all_o good_a and_o a_o punisher_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o that_o other_o article_n be_v to_o be_v beléeve_v implicitè_fw-fr that_o be_v beléeve_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v simplicibus_fw-la &_o fortè_fw-la omnibus_fw-la laicis_fw-la discernentibus_fw-la &_o adultis_fw-la sufficit_fw-la credere_fw-la deum_fw-la esse_fw-la praemiatorem_fw-la bonorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la malorum_fw-la punitorem_fw-la alios_fw-la autem_fw-la articulos_fw-la sufficit_fw-la credere_fw-la implicitè_fw-fr credendo_fw-la scil_n verum_fw-la quicquid_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la docet_fw-la but_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o adversary_n allowance_n of_o the_o people_n extreme_a ignorance_n it_o be_v false_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o say_v that_o any_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o notice_n or_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n as_o the_o author_n of_o summa_fw-la rosella_n his_o word_n imply_v loath_a the_o pope_n be_v that_o the_o people_n shall_v know_v too_o much_o and_o therefore_o he_o forbid_v scripture_n to_o be_v either_o translate_v or_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n without_o licence_n in_o public_a liturgy_n it_o be_v not_o the_o fashion_n of_o papist_n to_o suffer_v the_o people_n to_o hear_v scripture_n read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o papist_n also_o that_o understand_v not_o latin_a pray_v with_o their_o lip_n but_o not_o with_o their_o understanding_n and_o spirit_n for_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n be_v that_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n whereupon_o the_o people_n must_v needs_o grow_v dull_a and_o ignorant_a john_n billet_v in_o prolog_n lib._n the_o divin_v offic_n complain_v of_o this_o abuse_n quid_fw-la nostris_fw-la temporibus_fw-la est_fw-la agendum_fw-la say_v he_o speak_v of_o read_v of_o latin_a service_n ubi_fw-la nullus_fw-la vel_fw-la rarus_fw-la reperitur_fw-la legens_fw-la vel_fw-la audience_n qui_fw-la intelligat_fw-la videns_fw-la vel_fw-la agens_fw-la qui_fw-la animaduertat_fw-la iam_fw-la videtur_fw-la impletum_fw-la quod_fw-la à_fw-la propheta_fw-la dicitur_fw-la et_fw-la erit_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la quasi_fw-la de_fw-la populo_fw-la unus_fw-la he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o that_o read_v or_o hear_v that_o do_v understand_v or_o mark_v what_o be_v read_v or_o hear_v and_o that_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v fulfil_v that_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v like_o one_o of_o the_o people_n costerus_n say_v recitand_n in_o enchirid._n c_o de_fw-fr precib_n lat._n recitand_n that_o god_n and_o the_o saint_n understand_v all_o language_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a
they_o call_v secular_a to_o be_v detest_v see_v they_o offend_v so_o open_o and_o public_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la as_o if_o they_o seek_v praise_v hereby_o he_o say_v their_o vice_n be_v so_o increase_v that_o they_o seem_v scarce_o to_o leave_v any_o place_n for_o god_n mercy_n and_o in_o gregory_n the_o four_o in_o omnem_fw-la luxuris_fw-la &_o libidinem_fw-la se_fw-la effundit_fw-la ecclesiasticus_fw-la ordo_fw-la the_o clergy_n say_v he_o do_v run_v headlong_o into_o all_o luxuriousnesse_n and_o lust_n if_o then_o the_o people_n follow_v such_o guide_n we_o may_v well_o imagine_v in_o what_o term_n the_o church_n stand_v in_o his_o time_n then_o begin_v mischief_n to_o be_v multiply_v say_v vrspergensis_n there_o spring_v up_o hatred_n temp_n in_o fasc_fw-la temp_n deceit_n &_o treason_n heu_fw-la heu_fw-la domine_fw-la deus_fw-la say_v wernerus_n quomodo_fw-la obscuratum_fw-la est_fw-la aurum_fw-la mutatus_fw-la est_fw-la colour_n optimus_fw-la qualia_fw-la contigisse_fw-la circa_fw-la haec_fw-la tempora_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la &_o sede_fw-la apostolica_fw-la quam_fw-la usque_fw-la huc_fw-la tanto_fw-la zelo_fw-la custodivisti_fw-la legimus_fw-la scandala_fw-la quales_fw-la contentiones_fw-la &_o aemulationes_fw-la sectae_fw-la invidiae_fw-la ambition_n intrusiones_fw-la persecutiones_fw-la o_o tempus_fw-la pessimum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la defecit_fw-la sanctus_fw-la &_o diminutae_fw-la sunt_fw-la veritates_fw-la à_fw-la filijs_fw-la hominum_fw-la alas_o alas_o o_o lord_n god_n how_o be_v our_o gold_n obscure_v how_o be_v the_o good_a colour_n or_o state_n of_o thing_n change_v what_o scandal_n do_v we_o read_v to_o have_v happen_v about_o these_o time_n in_o the_o church_n and_o apostolic_a see_v which_o hitherto_o thou_o have_v with_o such_o zeal_n preserve_v what_o contention_n and_o emulation_n sect_n envy_n ambition_n intrusion_n and_o persecution_n o_o most_o wicked_a time_n in_o which_o holy_a man_n be_v fail_v and_o truth_n diminish_v from_o the_o son_n of_o man_n he_o say_v also_o that_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n christian_a faith_n begin_v to_o fail_v and_o that_o man_n give_v themselves_o to_o soothsay_v and_o witchcraft_n the_o wickedness_n and_o profaneness_n of_o latter_a time_n and_o of_o time_n present_a the_o papist_n themselves_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v and_o yet_o because_o robert_n parson_n think_v so_o well_o of_o his_o consort_n i_o will_v have_v he_o to_o turn_v back_o to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v already_o let_v he_o also_o read_v that_o which_o follow_v out_o of_o late_a writer_n 10._o in_o orat_fw-la ad_fw-la leon._n 10._o apud_fw-la plerosque_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la primores_fw-la say_v john_n picus_n of_o mirandula_n ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la exemplum_fw-la componi_fw-la atque_fw-la formari_fw-la plebs_fw-la ignara_fw-la debuisset_fw-la aut_fw-la nullus_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la exiguus_fw-la dei_fw-la cultus_fw-la nulla_fw-la benè_fw-la vivendi_fw-la ratio_fw-la atque_fw-la institutio_fw-la nullus_fw-la pudor_fw-la nulla_fw-la modestia_fw-la justitia_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o odium_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o gratiam_fw-la declinavit_fw-la pietas_fw-la penè_fw-la in_o superstitionem_fw-la procubuit_fw-la palamque_fw-la omnibus_fw-la in_o hominum_fw-la ordinibus_fw-la peccatur_fw-la sic_fw-la ut_fw-la saepenumero_fw-la virtus_fw-la probis_fw-la viris_fw-la vitio_fw-la vertatur_fw-la vitia_fw-la loco_fw-la virtutum_fw-la honorari_fw-la soleant_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la suorum_fw-la criminum_fw-la quasi_fw-la septa_fw-la &_o tanquam_fw-la moenia_fw-la &_o inauditam_fw-la petulantiam_fw-la &_o diuturnitatem_fw-la impunitatem_fw-la esse_fw-la putaverunt_fw-la among_o the_o most_o of_o the_o principal_a man_n of_o our_o religion_n say_v he_o after_o who_o example_n the_o ignorant_a sort_n of_o people_n ought_v to_o conform_v themselves_o there_o be_v either_o none_o or_o but_o little_a religion_n no_o order_n or_o institution_n of_o good_a live_n no_o shame_n no_o modesty_n justice_n incline_v to_o hatred_n or_o favour_n godliness_n be_v almost_o overthrow_v by_o superstition_n and_o all_o state_n of_o man_n do_v sin_n public_o and_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o oftentimes_o virtue_n be_v a_o reproach_n to_o honest_a man_n and_o vice_n be_v honour_v for_o virtue_n of_o those_o who_o have_v think_v unusual_a insolency_n continuance_n and_o impunity_n to_o be_v the_o wall_n and_o defence_n of_o their_o crime_n afterward_o he_o tax_v the_o luxuriousnesse_n of_o all_o estate_n the_o furiousness_n of_o lust_n the_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o clergy_n baptista_n of_o mantua_n write_v to_o leo_n have_v these_o word_n 4._o lib._n fast_o 4._o sancte_fw-la pater_fw-la succurre_fw-la leo_fw-la respublica_fw-la christi_fw-la labitur_fw-la aegrotatque_fw-la fides_fw-la iam_fw-la proxima_fw-la morti_fw-la that_o be_v help_v holy_a father_n leo_n the_o christian_a common_a wealth_n be_v fall_v and_o religion_n be_v sick_a and_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n marcellus_n palingenius_fw-la in_o his_o book_n to_o hercules_n duke_n of_o ferrara_n complain_v of_o a_o general_a corrupiton_n in_o the_o world_n virgo_fw-la pale_v virgo_fw-la imo_fw-la libenter_fw-la say_v he_o destituam_fw-la hunc_fw-la mundum_fw-la innumerisque_fw-la refertum_fw-la fraudibus_fw-la atque_fw-la dolis_fw-la incestibus_fw-la atque_fw-la rapinis_fw-la est_fw-la ubi_fw-la nulla_fw-la fides_fw-la pietas_fw-la ubi_fw-la nulla_fw-la nec_fw-la ulla_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o pax_n &_o requies_fw-la ubi_fw-la crimina_fw-la regnant_a omnia_fw-la that_o be_v willing_o i_o leave_v this_o world_n full_a of_o innumerable_a fraud_n deceit_n incest_n rapine_n where_o there_o be_v no_o true_a deal_n no_o piety_n justice_n peace_n or_o rest_n and_o where_o all_o sin_n reign_v and_o again_o et_fw-la rura_fw-la &_o siluae_fw-la infame_v vrbs_fw-la quaeque_fw-la lupanar_fw-la both_o country_n &_o wood_n be_v infamous_a every_o city_n be_v now_o a_o bordel_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o pope_n although_o they_o be_v call_v most_o holy_a yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v devise_v more_o wicked_a &_o flagitious_a sabinian_n that_o follow_v gregory_z the_o first_o go_v about_o to_o abrogate_v all_o his_o act_n his_o life_n be_v unblamable_a as_o say_v werner_n and_o his_o end_n fearful_a of_o constantine_n the_o second_o he_o say_v that_o he_o govern_v with_o great_a scandal_n and_o be_v the_o five_o infamous_a pope_n not_o long_o after_o succéede_v john_n the_o eight_o or_o as_o some_o count_v the_o nine_o that_o play_v the_o harlot_n be_v pope_n and_o die_v in_o travel_n of_o childbirth_n a_o matter_n most_o infamous_a and_o not_o to_o be_v excuse_v with_o word_n or_o any_o impudent_a denial_n of_o jebusite_n platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o sergius_n the_o three_o speak_v of_o diverse_a pope_n about_o those_o time_n he_o verò_fw-la largitione_n say_v he_o &_o ambitione_n pontificatum_fw-la quarente_n &_o adepti_fw-la posthabito_fw-la divino_fw-la culin_a inimcitias_fw-la non_fw-la secus_fw-la ac_fw-la saevissimi_fw-la quidam_fw-la tyranni_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la exercebant_fw-la svas_fw-la voluptales_fw-la postea_fw-la securius_fw-la expleturi_fw-la cum_fw-la nullibi_fw-la extarent_fw-la qui_fw-la eorum_fw-la vitiae_fw-la coercerent_fw-la that_o be_v these_o man_n seek_v the_o popedom_n by_o bribery_n and_o ambition_n and_o have_v get_v the_o same_o neglect_v the_o service_n of_o god_n do_v prosecute_v their_o enemy_n no_o otherwise_o then_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n purpose_v afterward_o to_o satisfy_v their_o pleasure_n when_o there_o be_v none_o to_o correct_v or_o control_v they_o wernerus_fw-la of_o john_n the_o twelve_o say_v that_o he_o be_v totus_fw-la lubricus_fw-la that_o be_v whole_o give_v to_o lust_n platina_n accord_v with_o he_o in_o the_o man_n fault_n though_o he_o reckon_v he_o the_o thirteen_o both_o agree_v that_o he_o be_v slay_v of_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o life_n of_o greg._n the_o six_o platina_n call_v 3._o pope_n three_o most_o foul_a monster_n beno_n platina_n and_o other_o testify_v that_o silvester_n the_o second_o and_o benedict_n the_o nine_o be_v magician_n and_o give_v themselves_o over_o to_o serve_v the_o devil_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o not_o only_a beno_n the_o cardinal_n but_o also_o diverse_a other_o report_n that_o he_o be_v a_o necromancer_n a_o murderer_n a_o bloody_a and_o cruel_a man_n the_o council_n of_o brixia_n depose_v he_o as_o a_o notorious_a necromancer_n possess_v with_o a_o diabolical_a spirit_n and_o a_o apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n after_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o the_o pope_n never_o cease_v to_o trouble_v christendom_n until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o have_v overthrow_v the_o roman_a empire_n and_o make_v way_n for_o the_o turk_n and_o dissolve_v all_o good_a order_n both_o concern_v religion_n and_o justice_n he_o that_o continue_v the_o story_n of_o vrspergensis_n say_v that_o clement_n the_o five_o be_v a_o notorious_a fornicator_n hic_fw-la ut_fw-la habet_fw-la chronicon_fw-la hermanni_n say_v he_o fuit_fw-la publicus_fw-la fornicator_n matteo_n villani_n in_o his_o history_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 39_o witness_v against_o clement_n the_o sixth_o that_o he_o keep_v the_o countess_n of_o turenna_n and_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o church_n della_n vergogna_fw-it delia_fw-la sancta_fw-la chiesa_fw-la non_fw-la si_fw-la fece_fw-mi conscienza_fw-it john_n the_o 23._o be_v a_o
hear_v of_o mass_n and_o such_o like_a nay_o they_o account_n it_o meritorious_a to_o massacre_v christian_a prince_n and_o other_o when_o the_o pope_n do_v excommunicate_v they_o but_o part_n of_o these_o work_n be_v flagitious_a part_v superstitious_a none_o good_a if_o then_o they_o allege_v we_o not_o their_o good_a work_n and_o prove_v they_o their_o glory_n and_o boast_n of_o their_o work_n will_v prove_v vain_a and_o odious_a final_o they_o must_v show_v we_o where_o these_o work_n be_v do_v for_o which_o the_o papist_n look_v to_o merit_v eternal_a life_n and_o by_o which_o they_o claim_v justification_n if_o they_o say_v at_o rome_n as_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v call_v the_o same_o the_o holy_a city_n than_o we_o shall_v wonder_v at_o their_o impudency_n for_o that_o city_n both_o in_o regard_n of_o priest_n and_o people_n of_o all_o other_o be_v know_v to_o be_v most_o flagitious_a 3._o lib._n calam._n 3._o peter_n palace_n say_v mantuan_n be_v pollute_v and_o rot_a with_o luxuriousnesse_n petrique_fw-la domus_fw-la polluta_fw-la sluenti_fw-la marcescit_fw-la luxu_fw-la and_o again_o sanctus_n agre_z scurris_n venerabilis_fw-la ara_fw-la cynaedis_fw-la seruit_fw-la venerandae_fw-la diwm_fw-la ganymedibus_fw-la aedes_fw-la the_o same_o man_n lib._n 4._o fastorum_fw-la tell_v leo_n the_o ten_o that_o he_o be_v to_o reform_v three_o thing_n first_o the_o bloody_a broil_n of_o italy_n second_o the_o poison_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o infect_v all_o country_n and_o three_o the_o abuse_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v much_o oppress_v the_o manner_n of_o italy_n robert_n bishop_n of_o aquila_n rehearse_v the_o sin_n of_o rome_n be_v note_v by_o petrarch_n in_o his_o sonnet_n beginning_n fiamma_n dal_n cielo_fw-it and_o l'auara_n babylonia_n and_o fontana_n di_fw-mi dolore_fw-la where_o he_o signify_v that_o she_o deserve_v to_o be_v consume_v with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n for_o her_o notorious_a wickedness_n capricorn_n capricorn_n palingenius_fw-la bring_v in_o the_o devil_n affirm_v that_o both_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o rome_n be_v his_o for_o that_o all_o do_v apply_v themselves_o to_o luxuriousnesse_n gluttony_n theft_n and_o fraud_n contend_v who_o shall_v excel_v other_o cuncti_fw-la luxuriae_fw-la say_v he_o atque_fw-la gulae_fw-la furtisque_fw-la dolisque_fw-la certatim_fw-la incumbunt_fw-la nosterque_fw-la est_fw-la sexus_fw-la uterque_fw-la if_o then_o pure_a religion_n be_v to_o visit_v the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n in_o their_o adversity_n and_o to_o live_v a_o unspotted_a life_n in_o this_o world_n as_o james_n the_o apostle_n teach_v then_o be_v not_o popish_a religion_n true_a nor_o undefiled_a if_o such_o as_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n describe_v galat._n 5._o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n then_o be_v the_o state_n of_o papist_n most_o miserable_a unless_o they_o repent_v they_o may_v say_v to_o themselves_o peace_n peace_n and_o boast_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v do_v mischief_n but_o there_o be_v no_o peace_n to_o the_o wicked_a neither_o shall_v their_o mischievous_a malice_n and_o bloody_a massacre_n always_o escape_v unpunished_a chap._n iii_o of_o the_o erroneous_a and_o absurd_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n wretched_a be_v the_o state_n of_o those_o that_o live_v in_o darkness_n and_o ignorance_n and_o without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o religion_n and_o virtue_n ignorantia_fw-la magnum_fw-la malum_fw-la and_o as_o tully_n say_v nescire_fw-la turpe_fw-la it_o be_v a_o shame_n not_o to_o know_v but_o not_o to_o know_v god_n nor_o his_o law_n be_v both_o shameful_a and_o damnable_a qui_fw-la ignorat_fw-la ignorabitur_fw-la say_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v 14._o 1._o cor._n 14._o god_n will_v not_o know_v he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n yet_o far_o worse_a it_o be_v to_o do_v malicious_o and_o wicked_o then_o only_o to_o live_v in_o ignorance_n and_o blindness_n but_o worst_a of_o all_o it_o be_v to_o hold_v obstinate_o dangerous_a and_o false_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n if_o then_o beside_o their_o ignorance_n and_o leudnes_n the_o papist_n hold_v diverse_a erroneous_a and_o false_a opinion_n concern_v religion_n then_o can_v their_o estate_n be_v otherwise_o then_o miserable_a let_v we_o therefore_o see_v what_o they_o hold_v both_o concern_v the_o foundation_n and_o also_o concern_v diverse_a necessary_a point_n of_o religion_n the_o papist_n give_v out_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o the_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n cap._n 31._o talk_v of_o the_o pope_n title_n say_v that_o he_o be_v call_v a_o foundation_n and_o that_o he_o be_v fundamentum_fw-la aedificij_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o book_n the_o pontif._n rom._n speak_v of_o these_o word_n of_o isay_n ecce_fw-la ponam_fw-la in_o fundamentis_fw-la zion_n lapidem_fw-la lapidem_fw-la probatum_fw-la angularem_fw-la say_v that_o these_o word_n not_o unfit_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o if_o he_o be_v that_o corner_n stone_n that_o be_v place_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o zion_n stapleton_n likewise_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o the_o relection_n of_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n affirm_v desperate_o that_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_o place_v in_o his_o authority_n teach_v us._n it_o be_v much_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v any_o way_n the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n but_o to_o make_v he_o a_o necessary_a foundation_n be_v a_o great_a presumption_n than_o i_o find_v in_o his_o fellow_n his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o hac_fw-la docentis_fw-la hominis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la deum_fw-la loquentem_fw-la audimus_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la cognoscendae_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la necessariò_fw-la poni_fw-la cernimus_fw-la neither_o can_v any_o of_o they_o well_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v see_v general_o they_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n out_o of_o christ_n word_n to_o peter_n mat._n 16._o for_o if_o these_o word_n be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o christ_n who_o peter_n confess_v then_o be_v they_o fond_o allege_v for_o justification_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n in_o sum_n all_o their_o practice_n show_v that_o the_o pope_n to_o they_o be_v summa_fw-la summarum_fw-la and_o the_o corner_n stone_n and_o chief_a foundation_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n for_o allege_v scripture_n they_o quarrel_n about_o the_o interpretation_n and_o admit_v no_o sense_n but_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n allow_v although_o his_o gloss_n and_o interpretation_n be_v never_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o text_n again_o allege_v counsel_n they_o inquire_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v allow_v they_o allege_v father_n speak_v against_o the_o pope_n they_o reject_v they_o but_o allege_v the_o pope_n determination_n there_o they_o stop_v like_o resty_a jade_n and_o will_v not_o be_v draw_v further_a so_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o resolution_n be_v the_o foundation_n nay_o they_o be_v all_o in_o all_o with_o papist_n but_o this_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n isay_n 8._o and_o 28._o mat._n 16._o and_o 1._o cor._n 3._o and_o ephes_n 2._o where_o christ_n be_v make_v the_o corner_n stone_n and_o sole_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o all_o father_n and_o good_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o be_v also_o most_o absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o reason_n for_o first_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n then_o shall_v there_o be_v as_o many_o foundation_n as_o pope_n second_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o foundation_n diverse_a from_o christ_n three_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v differ_v one_o from_o another_o one_o pope_n contradict_v and_o cross_v another_o four_o the_o pope_n be_v sometime_o reprobate_n and_o damn_a hell_n shall_v prevail_v against_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v most_o absurd_a five_o the_o church_n during_o the_o vacation_n shall_v be_v without_o foundation_n and_o a_o woman_n be_v pope_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o a_o woman_n final_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o man_n subject_a to_o infirmity_n error_n and_o mutation_n and_o not_o upon_o christ_n jesus_n the_o unmoveable_a rock_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n talk_v of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 4._o sess_n 4._o and_o of_o tradition_n as_o well_o concern_v faith_n as_o manner_n do_v receive_v both_o with_o equal_a affection_n and_o reverence_n as_o it_o be_v either_o deliver_v unto_o we_o either_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n or_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o keep_v by_o continual_a succession_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n omnes_fw-la
quae_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la traderet_fw-la 2._o reg._n 16.1_o clement_n have_v &_o utre_fw-la utra_fw-la sixtus_n read_v duobus_fw-la utribus_fw-la joan._n 6.65_o clement_n read_v qui_fw-la essent_fw-la non_fw-la credentes_fw-la sixtus_n qui_fw-la essent_fw-la credentes_fw-la and_o so_o it_o may_v appear_v by_o diligent_a collation_n that_o there_o be_v notable_a difference_n throughout_o the_o whole_a bible_n last_o if_o the_o latin_a text_n be_v more_o authentical_a than_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a why_o do_v not_o our_o adversary_n show_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o some_o learned_a man_n of_o late_a time_n at_o the_o least_o have_v correct_v the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a according_a to_o the_o latin_a and_o not_o rather_o contrariwise_o the_o four_o foundation_n of_o romish_a religion_n be_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 4._o sess_n 4._o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n teach_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n now_o for_o as_o much_o as_o no_o man_n know_v more_o certain_o what_o be_v the_o holy_a mother_n church_n meaning_n than_o the_o papist_n holy_a father_n the_o pope_n therefore_o they_o do_v hereof_o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o determine_v principal_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o rubrike_n of_o the_o decree_n cap._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o we_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n decretal_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o canonical_a scripture_n bellarmine_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v say_v of_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o together_o with_o a_o council_n be_v chief_a judge_n in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n cap._n 4._o he_o hold_v that_o no_o man_n may_v recede_v from_o his_o judgement_n or_o determination_n stapleton_n in_o his_o book_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n or_o ground_n of_o his_o religion_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n sentence_n and_o determination_n be_v infallible_a and_o so_o much_o do_v these_o good_a fellow_n rely_v upon_o their_o holy_a mother_n and_o holy_a father_n interpretation_n that_o they_o receive_v the_o same_o without_o any_o long_a inquisition_n though_o never_o so_o foolish_a and_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n our_o saviour_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n say_v take_v eat_v but_o they_o believe_v the_o pope_n that_o say_v gape_v and_o gaze_v but_o take_v not_o nor_o eat_v but_o rather_o hang_v up_o the_o sacrament_n he_o say_v bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la that_o be_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o but_o the_o pope_n say_v drink_v not_o all_o of_o this_o and_o they_o believe_v the_o pope_n the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v and_o that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o man_n but_o the_o pope_n do_v interpret_v these_o word_n so_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v better_a to_o burn_v then_o to_o marry_v and_o that_o marriage_n be_v reproachful_a and_o unlawful_a to_o priest_n and_o papist_n believe_v the_o pope_n so_o do_v they_o likewise_o in_o infinite_a false_a interpretation_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n interpretation_n and_o sentence_n shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o matter_n contrary_n to_o religion_n and_o reason_n the_o apostle_n ephes_n 2._o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o they_o because_o both_o of_o they_o preach_v christ_n apostolos_fw-la habemus_fw-la authores_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v the_o apostle_n for_o author_n of_o our_o doctrine_n say_v tertullian_n lib._n the_o prescript_n advers_a haeret_fw-la he_o say_v also_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o determine_v any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o his_o own_o head_n quamuis_fw-la sanctus_fw-la sit_fw-la aliquis_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la etc._n etc._n howsoever_o holy_a or_o eloquent_a a_o man_n be_v say_v hierome_n in_o psalm_n 86._o yet_o come_v after_o the_o apostle_n he_o deserve_v no_o authentical_a credit_n the_o lord_n declare_v in_o scripture_n augustine_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o hierome_n show_v that_o no_o man_n writing_n be_v comparable_a to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o this_o the_o canonist_n themselves_o confess_v in_o their_o gloss_n upon_o the_o chapter_n noli_fw-la meis_fw-la and_o ego_fw-la solis_fw-la do_v 9_o be_v not_o the_o papist_n then_o most_o miserable_a that_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n to_o father_n one_o to_o another_o and_o oftentimes_o void_a of_o truth_n wit_n learning_n religion_n or_o honesty_n the_o last_o foundation_n of_o romish_a faith_n be_v the_o preach_n of_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n quomodo_fw-la christus_fw-la eiusque_fw-la doctrina_fw-la say_v stapleton_n christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la est_fw-la doctrine_n praetat_fw-la ante_fw-la relect_a princip_n doctrine_n sic_fw-la alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la missi_fw-la eorúmue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o vim_o &_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la as_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n so_o other_o now_o send_v of_o christ_n and_o their_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o determination_n shall_v in_o my_o opinion_n have_v the_o force_n and_o place_n of_o a_o foundation_n say_v he_o and_o afterward_o he_o declare_v that_o those_o who_o the_o pope_n send_v be_v send_v by_o christ_n and_o the_o man_n which_o he_o mean_v but_o if_o this_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n then_o be_v the_o same_o build_v upon_o old_a wife_n fable_n forge_a tradition_n lie_v legend_n philosophical_a subtlety_n scholastical_a dispute_n popish_a decretal_n humane_a invention_n and_o such_o like_a principle_n for_o of_o they_o consist_v the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o fellow_n sermon_n as_o both_o experience_n &_o diverse_a friar_n idle_a homily_n which_o every_o man_n may_v see_v do_v plain_o testify_v furthermore_o if_o these_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n then_o be_v the_o same_o build_v upon_o man_n and_o not_o upon_o god_n upon_o humane_a devise_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n upon_o sand_n and_o not_o upon_o a_o rock_n such_o also_o as_o these_o foundation_n be_v such_o be_v the_o building_n that_o be_v weak_a false_a and_o erroneous_a such_o be_v the_o romish_a religion_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n treason_n murder_n empoysonment_n lie_n gloze_a flattery_n and_o all_o mean_n possible_a will_v thrust_v upon_o we_o and_o such_o be_v the_o conclusion_n that_o be_v build_v on_o these_o foundation_n final_o see_v no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o man_n upon_o unwritten_a tradition_n upon_o uncertain_a ground_n and_o lie_a report_n let_v the_o papist_n consider_v with_o themselves_o in_o what_o miserable_a state_n they_o stand_v and_o return_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n in_o time_n lest_o like_o the_o foolish_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n 7._o mat._n 7._o they_o build_v their_o house_n on_o sand_n and_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o fall_n thereof_o chap._n four_o of_o diverse_a other_o blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a point_n of_o popish_a religion_n true_a religion_n be_v most_o true_a venerable_a and_o respective_a of_o god_n true_a service_n if_o then_o popish_a religion_n contain_v any_o untrue_a or_o ridiculous_a vain_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n then_o be_v it_o not_o true_a or_o apostolical_a or_o christian_a nor_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o christian_a religion_n see_v no_o man_n can_v serve_v god_n and_o baal_n nor_o dagon_n can_v stand_v before_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n but_o notorious_a it_o be_v that_o popish_a religion_n contain_v many_o blasphemous_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a point_n first_o concern_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n they_o teach_v false_o and_o blasphemous_o and_o say_v that_o a_o mouse_n or_o dog_n or_o hog_n may_v eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n nay_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o affirm_v that_o his_o most_o holy_a body_n may_v be_v cast_v out_o upon_o a_o dunghill_n or_o into_o any_o unclean_a place_n prima_fw-la opinio_fw-la say_v alexander_n hales_n part_n 4._o sum_n q._n 53._o m._n 2._o quae_fw-la dicit_fw-la quod_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la defertur_fw-la quocunque_fw-la species_n deferunt_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o ventrem_fw-la canis_fw-la vel_fw-la suis_fw-la vel_fw-la in_o alia_fw-la lo_n ca_fw-mi immunda_fw-la videtur_fw-la vera_fw-la and_o again_o p._n 4._o sum_n q._n 45._o m._n 1._o si_fw-la canis_fw-la aut_fw-la porcus_fw-la deglutiat_fw-la hostiam_fw-la consecratam_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la quare_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la
christ_n in_o heaven_n then_o to_o any_o one_o of_o our_o brethren_n militant_a on_o earth_n but_o therein_o he_o lie_v notorious_o for_o common_o they_o call_v the_o virgin_n mary_n mother_n of_o mercy_n and_o desire_v she_o to_o protect_v they_o and_o to_o do_v away_o their_o sin_n likewise_o they_o pray_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o thomas_n &_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o other_o saint_n which_o i_o trow_v be_v more_o than_o they_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o of_o their_o brethren_n in_o earth_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o ask_v glory_n or_o grace_n 17._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr sa●_n beatit_fw-la c._n 17._o or_o other_o mean_n tend_v to_o blessedness_n of_o saint_n as_o author_n of_o god_n benefit_n but_o this_o be_v contradict_v as_o well_o by_o the_o doctrine_n as_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n sotus_n in_o confess_v cath_z say_v that_o saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v our_o coadjutor_n and_o fellow-worker_n in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o salvation_n saltzger_n write_v upon_o this_o argument_n affirm_v that_o we_o pray_v to_o saint_n for_o two_o benefit_n the_o first_o be_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v pray_v for_o we_o the_o second_o be_v that_o either_o visible_o or_o invisible_o they_o may_v bestow_v their_o help_n upon_o us._n clichtovey_n teach_v that_o saint_n have_v several_a grace_n to_o bestow_v on_o they_o that_o call_v upon_o they_o alexander_n hales_n say_v sanctos_fw-la oramus_fw-la ut_fw-la mediatores_fw-la per_fw-la quos_fw-la impetramus_fw-la we_o call_v upon_o saint_n as_o mediator_n by_o who_o we_o obtain_v thomas_n say_v we_o receive_v benefit_n from_o god_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o saint_n beneficia_fw-la dei_fw-la sumimus_fw-la mediantibus_fw-la sanctis_fw-la antoninus_n part_n 3._o sum_n tit._n 3._o say_v that_o god_n benefit_n descend_v down_o to_o we_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o angel_n and_o holy_a soul_n and_o again_o p._n 4._o tit._n 15._o maria_fw-la ita_fw-la advocate_n &_o interpellat_n ut_fw-la deum_fw-la patrem_fw-la placet_fw-la &_o conversos_fw-la in_o gloriam_fw-la inducat_fw-la mary_n be_v so_o our_o advocate_n and_o intercessor_n that_o she_o do_v pacify_v the_o father_n and_o bring_v repentant_a sinner_n into_o glory_n bernardine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o mary_n say_v that_o no_o grace_n come_v from_o heaven_n unto_o the_o earth_n but_o by_o mary_n and_o unless_o the_o same_o pass_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o mary_n for_o that_o all_o grace_n do_v enter_v into_o mary_n and_o from_o she_o be_v communicate_v to_o we_o and_o for_o that_o she_o be_v the_o mediatrix_fw-la of_o salvation_n of_o conjunction_n of_o intercession_n of_o communication_n common_o they_o pray_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o this_o form_n give_v we_o peace_n protect_v i_o to_o s._n george_n they_o address_v themselves_o say_v this_o same_o let_v he_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v rest_v in_o heaven_n with_o bless_a soul_n hic_fw-la nos_fw-la saluet_fw-la say_v they_o à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la cum_fw-la beatis_fw-la possimus_fw-la quiescere_fw-la and_o if_o they_o do_v only_o intercede_v for_o we_o &_o not_o bestow_v upon_o we_o the_o thing_n we_o pray_v for_o why_o do_v some_o beg_v of_o s._n anthony_n the_o health_n of_o their_o swine_n and_o of_o s._n winnoc_n the_o good_a stand_n of_o their_o sheep_n why_o do_v they_o pray_v to_o s._n luis_n for_o their_o horse_n and_o to_o s._n nicolas_n for_o good_a passage_n at_o the_o sea_n why_o do_v painter_n call_v on_o s._n luke_n and_o physician_n on_o cosmas_n and_o damianus_n and_o shoemaker_n on_o s._n crespin_n final_o why_o do_v they_o tell_v we_o in_o their_o legend_n of_o the_o apparition_n of_o diverse_a saint_n in_o time_n of_o war_n pestilence_n and_o other_o sickness_n and_o work_v diverse_a feat_n for_o if_o they_o do_v only_o intercede_v for_o we_o than_o one_o saint_n may_v serve_v for_o all_o purpose_n and_o then_o shall_v they_o only_o appear_v as_o suppliant_n to_o god_n and_o not_o as_o bestower_n of_o grace_n and_o worker_n of_o wonder_n final_o then_o shall_v we_o not_o say_v help_v i_o heal_v i_o defend_v i_o but_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o i_o may_v be_v holpen_v heal_v and_o defend_v be_v not_o the_o paist_n then_o in_o miserable_a state_n that_o forget_v for_o the_o most_o part_n their_o only_a mediator_n and_o redeemer_n run_v to_o saint_n and_o angel_n nay_o run_v to_o such_o as_o be_v no_o saint_n nor_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n as_o george_n that_o kill_v the_o dragon_n catherine_n the_o daughter_n of_o costus_n christopher_n that_o bear_v christ_n and_o such_o like_a be_v they_o not_o mad_a to_o pray_v unto_o such_o as_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o hear_v they_o or_o not_o and_o do_v not_o some_o say_v that_o they_o be_v every_o where_o present_a to_o hear_v our_o prayer_n other_o that_o they_o hear_v such_o prayer_n as_o god_n reveal_v unto_o they_o other_o that_o they_o see_v all_o thing_n in_o god_n face_n other_o that_o they_o understand_v by_o relation_n of_o angel_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o bellarmine_n confess_v it_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la beatitudine_fw-la sanct_n ca._n 20._o and_o that_o which_o he_o affirm_v that_o saint_n do_v see_v all_o in_o god_n from_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o their_o bless_a estate_n be_v most_o absurd_a for_o what_o be_v see_v to_o hear_v again_o how_o can_v thing_n temporary_a be_v imprint_v in_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n or_o can_v saint_n see_v some_o thing_n and_o not_o all_o if_o they_o comprehend_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o incomprehensible_a essence_n of_o the_o deity_n most_o wretched_o also_o they_o do_v worship_n dumb_a image_n kneel_v unto_o they_o kiss_v they_o and_o burn_a incense_n unto_o they_o say_v to_o the_o cross_n o_o crux_fw-la ave_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la auge_fw-mi pijs_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la reisque_fw-la dona_fw-la veniam_fw-la all_o hail_n o_o cross_n my_o only_a hope_n increase_v justice_n in_o the_o godly_a and_o grant_v pardon_n to_o sinner_n and_o cry_v to_o the_o crucifix_n thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o 23._o bellar_n de_fw-fr imagine_v c._n 23._o thou_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o thy_o father_n and_o call_v a_o block_n mother_n of_o mercy_n and_o say_v before_o stock_n and_o stone_n our_o father_n and_o aue_fw-la maria_n and_o knock_v their_o breast_n and_o whip_v themselves_o before_o image_n as_o the_o idolatrous_a priest_n do_v before_o their_o idol_n the_o apostle_n when_o he_o lay_v before_o the_o corinthian_n the_o miserable_a state_n they_o stand_v in_o while_o they_o be_v yet_o gentile_n he_o use_v no_o other_o term_n than_o these_o you_o know_v that_o you_o be_v gentile_n and_o be_v carry_v away_o unto_o dumb_a idol_n as_o you_o be_v lead_v which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o be_v miserable_a and_o blind_a when_o you_o be_v carry_v away_o unto_o dumb_a idol_n why_o then_o may_v we_o not_o say_v the_o same_o to_o papist_n they_o may_v percase_o deny_v the_o case_n to_o be_v like_a but_o in_o my_o challenge_n i_o have_v by_o many_o argument_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v gross_a idolater_n &_o have_v clear_o show_v that_o they_o have_v no_o better_a excuse_n for_o their_o worship_n of_o image_n than_o the_o idolatrous_a gentile_n have_v for_o their_o worship_n of_o idol_n be_v they_o not_o then_o likewise_o blind_a and_o miserable_a think_v to_o thrust_v other_o out_o of_o their_o society_n which_o they_o call_v the_o church_n they_o have_v flat_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o society_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o if_o their_o church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n profess_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o participate_v the_o same_o sacrament_n under_o the_o rule_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o bellarmine_n say_v lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccl._n milit_fw-la cap._n 2._o then_o be_v they_o not_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o that_o church_n be_v long_o before_o either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n beside_o that_o false_a it_o be_v that_o either_o the_o apostle_n or_o whole_a apostolic_a church_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o john_n the_o evangelist_n that_o live_v long_o after_o peter_n be_v subject_a to_o linus_n cletus_n or_o clement_n in_o who_o time_n he_o live_v final_o false_a it_o be_v that_o god_n appoint_v the_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v nothing_o thereof_o in_o scripture_n the_o father_n show_n that_o the_o chief_a authority_n in_o external_a matter_n be_v in_o general_a counsel_n and_o emperor_n and_o bellarmine_n idle_a dispute_n concern_v his_o pope_n be_v long_o since_o overthrow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n it_o appear_v also_o for_o that_o they_o hear_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n but_o follow_v a_o stranger_n for_o that_o
they_o have_v receive_v diverse_a heresy_n and_o devise_v new_a sacrament_n relinquish_a christ_n his_o institution_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o that_o they_o have_v other_o foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n than_o be_v lay_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n for_o that_o they_o persecute_v true_a christian_n murder_v they_o and_o massacre_v they_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n persecute_v they_o and_o for_o diverse_a other_o reason_n lay_v down_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n book_n de_n eccles_n militante_fw-la if_o then_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v save_v without_o the_o church_n in_o what_o case_n be_v they_o that_o run_v after_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v that_o antichrist_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2._o thess_n 2._o be_v run_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o whither_o be_v they_o run_v forsooth_o into_o the_o confusion_n of_o babylon_n where_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n mass_n priest_n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la cap._n 2._o &_o friar_n make_v merchandise_n of_o man_n soul_n bellarmine_n say_v that_o neither_o faith_n hope_n nor_o charity_n nor_o other_o internal_a virtue_n be_v require_v that_o a_o man_n absolute_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o external_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o then_o will_v not_o leave_v that_o society_n which_o for_o aught_o that_o we_o know_v may_v be_v a_o pack_n of_o turk_n and_o infidel_n without_o all_o virtue_n religion_n and_o honesty_n especial_o if_o they_o profess_v the_o romish_a faith_n external_o further_o as_o they_o have_v exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n so_o they_o have_v put_v themselves_o under_o the_o subjection_n of_o antichrist_n that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o malignant_a church_n and_o to_o his_o cardinal_n masspriest_n and_o friar_n which_o rabblement_n be_v fit_o resemble_v to_o the_o master_n cook_n of_o hell_n his_o scalder_n the_o blacke-guard_n and_o all_o the_o scullery_n of_o satan_n whatsoever_o the_o pope_n decree_v that_o they_o receive_v 19_o c._n sic_fw-la om●●●_n do_v 19_o agatho_n the_o pope_n have_v tell_v they_o in_o good_a earnest_n that_o all_o sanction_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o if_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o divine_a voice_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o pope_n never_o so_o unlearned_a or_o foolish_a or_o perverse_a yet_o if_o he_o say_v the_o word_n sit_v on_o his_o close_a chair_n it_o must_v stand_v his_o voice_n they_o take_v to_o be_v infallible_a his_o sentence_n be_v honour_v like_o a_o divine_a oracle_n likewise_o his_o cardinal_n mass_n priest_n and_o friar_n albeit_o they_o be_v the_o false_a prophet_n speak_v of_o by_o s._n peter_n 2._o pet._n 2._o and_o diverse_o detect_v by_o s._n john_n in_o his_o revelation_n to_o be_v limb_n of_o antichrist_n yet_o be_v they_o follow_v these_o lead_n and_o their_o simple_a hearer_n follow_v they_o the_o way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n their_o teacher_n bring_v to_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n as_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n say_v and_o they_o can_v escape_v beléeve_v their_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o run_v after_o they_o in_o their_o wicked_a way_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la that_o hellhound_n that_o first_o bark_v against_o queen_n elizabeth_n our_o late_a sovereign_n eliz._n in_o bulla_n contra_fw-la eliz._n say_v that_o christ_n commit_v his_o church_n to_o peter_n alone_o uni_fw-la soli_fw-la but_o that_o be_v most_o false_a the_o apostle_n ephes_n 4._o say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n likewise_o mat._n 28._o he_o say_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n go_v and_o teach_v beside_o that_o what_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o peter_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n s._n peter_n have_v neither_o such_o ruby_n cardinal_n nor_o such_o a_o particoloured_a guard_n of_o swisser_n nor_o such_o a_o hellish_a rabble_n of_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v contrariwise_o he_o preach_v and_o suffer_v as_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o other_o say_v that_o masspriest_n and_o friar_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o we_o find_v they_o to_o be_v the_o locust_n that_o as_o s._n john_n foretell_v come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n mention_v apocalyps_n 9_o if_o they_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n than_o will_v they_o teach_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n decretal_n scholastical_a invention_n philosophical_a subtlety_n and_o such_o foolery_n again_o they_o will_v not_o lead_v their_o miserable_a disciple_n from_o christ_n to_o antichrist_n they_o have_v also_o decline_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n our_o saviour_n only_o institute_v two_o that_o proper_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n bear_v witness_v the_o father_n also_o confirm_v unto_o we_o two_o only_a sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n cyprian_a lib._n 2._o epist_n 1._o tunc_fw-la demum_fw-la plane_n sanctificari_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la possunt_fw-la si_fw-la utroque_fw-la sacramento_n nascantur_fw-la then_o may_v they_o be_v sanctify_v and_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v he_o if_o they_o be_v regenerate_v by_o both_o the_o sacrament_n augustine_n de_fw-fr symb_n ad_fw-la catechum_fw-la say_v haec_fw-la sunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gemina_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la these_o be_v the_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v any_o father_n name_v more_o sacrament_n than_o two_o where_o he_o speak_v proper_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o justines_n second_o apology_n of_o tertullian_n lib._n 1._o &_o 4._o contr_n martion_n of_o clement_n recognit_v lib._n 1._o of_o ambrose_n lib._n the_o sacrament_n of_o cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o catechisticall_a sermon_n of_o augustine_n lib._n 3._o the_o doctr_n christ_n cap._n 9_o of_o gregory_n cap._n multi_fw-la secularium_fw-la 1._o q._n 1._o who_o although_o he_o name_v baptism_n chrism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n yet_o chrism_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o addition_n to_o baptism_n christi_fw-la de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sing_v christi_fw-la of_o paschasius_fw-la and_o other_o sunt_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v paschasius_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la baptismus_fw-la corpus_fw-la quoque_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v baptism_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o manifest_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v that_o bessarion_n write_v upon_o the_o sacrament_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o deliver_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o papist_n have_v add_v other_o five_o sacrament_n unto_o these_o two_o give_v like_o virtue_n unto_o confirmation_n marriage_n order_n penance_n and_o extreme_a unction_n as_o unto_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o teach_v that_o sacrament_n contain_v grace_n and_o justify_v the_o receiver_n so_o that_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o well_o he_o be_v justify_v that_o be_v confirm_v marry_a order_v or_o anoint_v as_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v or_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n where_o christ_n distribute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o give_v both_o the_o kind_n to_o all_o communicant_n they_o seldom_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n from_o all_o but_o the_o priest_n in_o confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n they_o use_v other_o sign_n and_o form_n then_o ever_o christ_n ordain_v they_o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o indulgence_n have_v power_n to_o remit_v satisfaction_n and_o to_o do_v away_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o sin_n be_v they_o not_o than_o most_o miserable_a that_o have_v corrupt_v the_o sacrament_n and_o seal_n of_o god_n eternal_a testament_n and_o as_o it_o be_v break_v the_o covenant_n betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o and_o despise_v the_o pledge_n of_o his_o love_n of_o christian_a faith_n they_o think_v so_o base_o that_o they_o make_v it_o nothing_o but_o a_o bare_a assent_n to_o god_n word_n as_o well_o in_o fear_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o law_n as_o beléeve_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o teach_v that_o not_o only_o reprobate_a man_n but_o also_o the_o devil_n also_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n bellarmine_n lib._n the_o iustif_a 1._o c._n 15._o speak_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o wicked_a man_n and_o devil_n say_v that_o both_o be_v true_a and_o right_a and_o catholic_a faith_n and_o comparable_a to_o s._n peter_n faith_n concern_v the_o object_n grace_n that_o make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o god_n say_v bellarmine_n can_v real_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o habit_n of_o charity_n 6._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la gratia_fw-la cap._n 6._o but_o if_o this_o
be_v true_a then_o may_v christian_n be_v save_v by_o their_o work_n without_o the_o help_n of_o god_n grace_n work_v with_o they_o which_o be_v mere_a pelagianisme_n for_o if_o charity_n as_o it_o be_v in_o we_o habitual_o make_v we_o belove_v than_o it_o be_v our_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o not_o god_n grace_n or_o love_n towards_o we_o or_o his_o grace_n help_v we_o and_o remit_v our_o sin_n through_o christ_n that_o save_v we_o proper_o they_o deny_v that_o a_o man_n be_v certain_o to_o persuade_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o salvation_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o and_o all_o their_o confidence_n they_o put_v in_o their_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o pilgrimage_n indulgence_n eat_v of_o fumadae_n creep_v to_o the_o cross_n kiss_v of_o the_o pope_n toe_n pray_v to_o saint_n to_o stock_n to_o stone_n give_v of_o money_n to_o lazy_a monk_n and_o friar_n and_o such_o like_a humane_a devise_n be_v they_o not_o than_o most_o wretched_a that_o neither_o understand_v what_o be_v grace_n nor_o what_o be_v faith_n nor_o what_o be_v charity_n nor_o what_o belong_v to_o good_a work_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o say_v our_o saviour_n mark_v 16_o shall_v be_v damn_v the_o apostle_n also_o show_v ibidem_fw-la tit._n 3._o ibidem_fw-la that_o none_o be_v justify_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n nay_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n save_v we_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n by_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o new_a birth_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o eat_v holy_a bread_n they_o hope_v to_o attain_v health_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o romish_a missal_n they_o doubt_v not_o also_o but_o that_o their_o eat_n of_o their_o paschal_n lamb_n tend_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n by_o holy_a water_n they_o teach_v that_o not_o only_a devil_n be_v drive_v away_o but_o also_o venial_a sin_n remit_v final_o there_o remain_v but_o few_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o the_o papist_n with_o their_o leven_n partly_o of_o judaical_a and_o heathenish_a superstition_n and_o partly_o of_o heretical_a doctrine_n have_v not_o corrupt_v what_o then_o rest_v but_o that_o we_o deplore_v their_o blindness_n which_o admit_v such_o erroneous_a absurd_a and_o blasphemous_a point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o wilful_o resist_v those_o that_o offer_v unto_o they_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o god_n word_n chap._n v._o the_o miserable_a state_n of_o papist_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v prove_v further_o for_o that_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o those_o blessing_n which_o we_o have_v receive_v by_o the_o abrogation_n of_o popish_a heresy_n and_o superstition_n i_o do_v not_o think_v but_o that_o our_o adversary_n albeit_o they_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o other_o point_n yet_o in_o this_o will_v join_v with_o we_o and_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n to_o wander_v without_o any_o certainty_n in_o religion_n parson_n in_o the_o first_o encounter_n of_o his_o wardword_n do_v in_o effect_n say_v so_o much_o and_o albeit_o they_o shall_v deny_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n very_o evident_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 2._o those_o that_o sin_n without_o the_o law_n shall_v perish_v also_o without_o the_o law_n if_o they_o know_v the_o law_n and_o do_v it_o not_o the_o law_n will_v accuse_v they_o and_o condemn_v they_o if_o they_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v the_o law_n yet_o shall_v god_n justice_n lie_v hold_v upon_o they_o for_o offend_v the_o law_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v know_v the_o apostle_n ephes_n 2._o when_o he_o will_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o miserable_a estate_n before_o their_o conversion_n say_v they_o live_v without_o christ_n and_o without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n as_o if_o nothing_o can_v be_v devise_v more_o damnable_a then_o to_o live_v with_o out_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o gentile_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v ephes_n 4._o walk_v in_o the_o vanity_n of_o their_o mind_n have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v and_o be_v stranger_n from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o because_o of_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o argue_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o christian_n that_o live_v like_o gentile_n without_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n jesus_n god_n have_v also_o appoint_v a_o certain_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n give_v some_o apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n one_o end_n be_v that_o henceforth_o we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n but_o the_o papist_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o be_v show_v live_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v carry_v about_o with_o the_o blast_n of_o every_o blunder_a pope_n &_o waver_v as_o the_o wind_n of_o his_o bluster_a bull_n and_o decretal_n do_v carry_v they_o upon_o the_o scripture_n they_o ground_n not_o themselves_o but_o must_v take_v both_o such_o scripture_n and_o such_o doctrine_n as_o he_o shall_v deliver_v they_o second_o it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n for_o as_o out_o of_o the_o ark_n of_o no_o all_o perish_a in_o the_o old_a world_n so_o all_o that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v undoubted_o perish_v those_o sheep_n that_o be_v without_o christ_n his_o fold_n be_v expose_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o wolf_n and_o without_o hope_n of_o salvation_n how_o then_o can_v the_o papist_n look_v for_o salvation_n that_o in_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n further_o by_o many_o property_n they_o show_v themselves_o to_o have_v no_o affinity_n with_o the_o true_a church_n as_o before_o i_o have_v declare_v three_o without_o true_a faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n the_o same_o be_v the_o door_n by_o which_o we_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o we_o have_v show_v that_o in_o many_o point_v the_o papist_n have_v decline_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n what_o hope_v then_o can_v they_o have_v either_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n or_o to_o please_v god_n how_o happen_v it_o they_o see_v not_o their_o wretched_a state_n absque_fw-la notitia_fw-la svi_fw-la creatoris_fw-la omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la pecus_fw-la est_fw-la without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n a_o man_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o beast_n say_v hierome_n epist_n 3._o four_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n betwixt_o god_n and_o us._n our_o saviour_n take_v the_o cup_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n call_v it_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n have_v violate_v christ_n his_o institution_n in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o by_o diverse_a argument_n we_o have_v declare_v then_o have_v they_o declare_v themselves_o unworthy_a to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o covenant_n five_o those_o which_o despise_v the_o lord_n shall_v themselves_o be_v despise_v say_v the_o lord_n 1._o sam._n 2._o and_o as_o he_o promise_v blessing_n to_o those_o that_o worship_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n so_o he_o threaten_v curse_n to_o those_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o keep_v his_o commaundent_o and_o ceremony_n prescribe_v for_o his_o worship_n quod_fw-la si_fw-la audire_fw-la nolueris_fw-la vocem_fw-la domini_fw-la dei_fw-la tui_fw-la ut_fw-la custodias_fw-la &_o facias_fw-la omne_fw-la mandata_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o caeremonias_fw-la quas_fw-la ego_fw-la praecipio_fw-la tibi_fw-la hodiè_fw-la venient_fw-la super_fw-la te_fw-la omnes_fw-la maledictiones_fw-la &_o apprehendent_fw-la te_fw-la say_v moses_n deut._n 28._o let_v the_o papist_n then_o consider_v well_o with_o themselves_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o transform_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n into_o the_o worship_n of_o creature_n and_o serve_v he_o not_o as_o he_o have_v appoint_v but_o according_a to_o their_o own_o devise_n and_o fancy_n and_o let_v they_o beware_v that_o these_o plague_n &_o curse_n overtake_v they_o not_o see_v they_o have_v whole_o neglect_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n six_o strange_a tongue_n be_v for_o a_o sign_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o cor._n 14._o not_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o prophet_n also_o threaten_v as_o a_o plague_n that_o god_n will_v speak_v to_o his_o people_n by_o man_n of_o other_o tongue_n and_o in_o strange_a language_n 28._o isay_n 28._o in_o loquela_fw-la labij_fw-la &_o lingua_fw-la altera_fw-la loquetur_fw-la ad_fw-la populum_fw-la istum_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o strange_a that_o the_o papist_n feel_v not_o
lewd_a unlearned_a and_o filthy_a as_o they_o be_v before_o clement_n the_o eight_o for_o all_o his_o fortitude_n can_v scarce_o go_v without_o help_n and_o very_o strange_a it_o seem_v to_o we_o here_o that_o the_o pope_n chair_n shall_v serve_v to_o cure_v man_n of_o all_o ignorance_n infirmity_n and_o disease_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o robert_n parson_n may_v sit_v some_o few_o hour_n in_o the_o pope_n chair_n that_o he_o may_v be_v cure_v of_o his_o rudeness_n in_o rail_v his_o ignorance_n in_o writing_n and_o all_o other_o his_o scab_n and_o infirmity_n i_o for_o my_o part_n believe_v rather_o that_o the_o rudeness_n of_o this_o rudent_fw-la and_o mad_a jebusite_n will_v never_o be_v cure_v although_o he_o be_v reboyl_v like_o peleus_n in_o the_o leaf_n next_o go_v before_o for_o acephali_a he_o write_v a_o chevali_fw-la show_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o greek_a and_o his_o head_n to_o be_v as_o gross_a as_o any_o capel_n head_n rather_o than_o our_o church_n to_o be_v without_o head_n who_o hold_v christ_n for_o the_o sole_a head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o prove_v that_o catholic_a man_n can_v receive_v their_o faith_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v a_o collection_n and_o communion_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n i_o think_v that_o i_o need_v not_o to_o use_v many_o argument_n the_o same_o be_v a_o matter_n so_o plain_a and_o evident_a for_o than_o shall_v the_o receiver_n be_v no_o catholic_n nor_o shall_v the_o catholic_a church_n consist_v of_o particular_a man_n and_o final_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v be_v agent_n to_o deliver_v and_o all_o member_n to_o receive_v and_o no_o distinction_n shall_v be_v between_o the_o giver_n and_o receiver_n but_o i_o use_v only_o one_o argument_n draw_v from_o a_o common_a principle_n of_o schoolman_n viz._n that_o action_n be_v act_v of_o singular_a person_n and_o not_o of_o the_o body_n collective_a suppose_v that_o i_o have_v have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o schoolman_n or_o a_o man_n at_o the_o least_o that_o understand_v logic_n but_o now_o i_o see_v i_o be_o front_v with_o a_o ass_n and_o a_o fellow_n devoid_a of_o logic_n and_o reason_n for_o otherwise_o he_o will_v not_o have_v talk_v so_o idle_o of_o suppositum_fw-la and_o singular_a and_o universale_fw-la nor_o derive_v his_o logic_n from_o tolet_n nor_o deny_v my_o argument_n for_o if_o in_o god_n the_o whole_a essence_n do_v suffer_v and_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n or_o if_o the_o whole_a essence_n shall_v be_v bear_v and_o not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o parson_n must_v grant_v if_o he_o will_v have_v action_n to_o proceed_v à_fw-fr toto_fw-la collectivo_fw-la then_o do_v he_o fall_v flat_o into_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o patripassian_o &_o overthrow_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n again_o all_o his_o discourse_n about_o term_n collective_a and_o universal_a make_v against_o himself_o 1_o 1._o metaph._n 1_o for_o if_o as_o aristotle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o all_o action_n and_o generation_n be_v individuis_fw-la and_o singular_a person_n and_o not_o in_o thing_n universal_a or_o body_n of_o commonwealth_n then_o i_o say_v true_a and_o he_o false_a he_o may_v also_o receive_v back_o his_o boyery_n and_o foolery_n and_o keep_v they_o to_o himself_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v not_o proper_o deliver_v the_o faith_n they_o themselves_o also_o after_o a_o sort_n confess_v for_o when_o they_o bring_v proof_n of_o their_o faith_n they_o go_v to_o this_o pope_n and_o that_o pope_n this_o man_n and_o that_o man_n and_o not_o to_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o be_v also_o prove_v by_o the_o example_n of_o a_o body_n politic_a for_o if_o particular_a man_n do_v all_o action_n that_o belong_v to_o the_o state_n and_o not_o all_o the_o commonwealth_n how_o can_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v say_v proper_o to_o decree_n to_o proclaim_v to_o give_v out_o must_v all_o meet_v &_o like_o a_o chorus_n speak_v or_o act_v a_o part_n o_o mere_a dizardry_n o_o pitiful_a ignorance_n and_o that_o to_o be_v correct_v with_o many_o stripe_n nay_o himself_n in_o the_o end_n be_v drive_v to_o say_v fol._n 109._o that_o when_o papist_n say_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o albeit_o particular_a priest_n etc._n etc._n deliver_v the_o same_o yet_o for_o that_o they_o do_v it_o not_o as_o of_o themselves_o but_o by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n deliver_v it_o so_o you_o see_v he_o come_v like_o a_o resty_a jade_n to_o the_o montoier_n and_o say_v as_o we_o say_v in_o effect_n and_o to_o help_v himself_o bely_v his_o fellow_n for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v any_o papist_n so_o sottish_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o universal_a catholic_a church_n deliver_v the_o faith_n to_o private_a person_n in_o his_o second_o encounter_n c._n 3._o in_o write_v bede_n word_n he_o commit_v a_o gross_a solecism_n where_o he_o say_v scientiam_fw-la seruatur_fw-la &_o confitetur_fw-la he_o shall_v have_v say_v scientiam_fw-la scrutatur_fw-la &_o confitetur_fw-la but_o that_o his_o spectacle_n fail_v he_o his_o disciple_n therefore_o may_v do_v well_o to_o keep_v up_o their_o master_n that_o have_v forget_v his_o grammar_n in_o the_o same_o encounter_n fol._n 37._o he_o do_v ridiculous_o prove_v his_o mass_n by_o the_o leviticall_a sacrifice_n of_o zachary_n mention_v luke_n 1._o and_o foolish_o argue_v that_o papist_n may_v profit_v much_o by_o hear_v mass_n albeit_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o but_o one_o great_a inconvenience_n he_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o for_o if_o the_o example_n of_o zachary_n make_v for_o the_o mass_n then_o as_o the_o people_n be_v without_o when_o zachary_n offer_v within_o so_o the_o people_n may_v be_v in_o the_o churchyard_n when_o the_o priest_n be_v at_o mass_n so_o they_o shall_v neither_o need_v to_o hear_v mass_n nor_o see_v mass_n fol._n 58._o of_o the_o second_o encounter_n the_o patch_n confess_v he_o fetch_v his_o divinity_n from_o thomas_n aquinas_n the_o warder_n say_v he_o show_v at_o large_a out_o of_o s._n thomas_n whereby_o his_o doltish_a folly_n be_v prove_v at_o large_a that_o allege_v so_o brave_a a_o author_n to_o we_o that_o for_o divinity_n be_v of_o equal_a credit_n with_o robert_n parson_n though_o far_o more_o subtle_a and_o better_a learned_a fol._n 65._o answer_v to_o a_o place_n out_o of_o paraleip_n vrspergensis_n he_o say_v he_o find_v it_o not_o but_o that_o be_v either_o his_o great_a ignorance_n or_o the_o thickness_n of_o his_o spectacle_n let_v he_o therefore_o look_v that_o book_n in_o the_o note_n upon_o the_o year_n 1518._o and_o he_o shall_v find_v these_o word_n there_o record_v sic_fw-la dicerem_fw-la in_o scholis_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la manet_fw-la in_o aeternos_fw-la diversum_fw-la sentio_fw-la fol._n 67._o for_o petilian_n and_o cresconius_n he_o name_v petilian_n &_o crescentius_n show_v himself_o well_o travel_v in_o s._n augustin_n work_n fol._n 106._o b._n 2._o encounter_v chap._n 13._o ignorant_o he_o do_v so_o interpret_v the_o word_n primo_fw-la mancipio_fw-la gehennae_fw-la in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o as_o if_o boniface_n do_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o chief_a bondslave_n of_o hell_n the_o gloss_n do_v notorious_o convince_v he_o of_o ignorance_n mancipio_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o gloss_n in_o cap._n si_fw-la papa_n do_v 40._o id_fw-la est_fw-la diabolo_fw-la qui_fw-la mancipatus_fw-la est_fw-la gehennae_fw-la but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n be_v little_o behold_v to_o parson_n that_o call_v he_o the_o chief_a bondslave_n of_o hell_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o if_o he_o take_v the_o bastardly_a jebusite_n handsome_o he_o will_v whip_v the_o knave_n like_o a_o mancipium_fw-la gehennae_fw-la or_o galley_n slave_n until_o he_o have_v recant_v his_o word_n and_o bring_v he_o out_o of_o hell_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o wretched_a papist_n may_v see_v their_o servile_a estate_n that_o follow_v oftentimes_o either_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o gloss_n say_v or_o the_o devil_n bondslave_n the_o pope_n as_o parson_n the_o pope_n slave_n of_o ignorance_n confess_v fol._n 113.2_o encounter_n 14._o he_o speak_v false_a latin_a say_v qui_fw-la parcè_fw-la seminit_fw-la parcè_fw-la &_o metet_fw-la put_v seminit_fw-la for_o seminat_fw-la and_o quote_v the_o 2._o corinthian_n 11._o for_o 2._o corinthian_n 9_o fol._n 114.2_o encounter_n chap._n 14._o he_o distinguish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o homoousion_n and_o consubstantiality_n as_o two_o several_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereas_o the_o learned_a out_o of_o which_o rank_n i_o blot_v parson_n know_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o greek_a be_v nothing_o
but_o speak_v english_a we_o no_o more_o call_v letter_n of_o that_o argument_n epistle_n of_o persecution_n than_o we_o call_v discourse_n of_o parson_n his_o ribaldry_n and_o bastardy_n epistle_n of_o ribaldry_n and_o bastardy_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o ridiculous_a then_o that_o he_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o squire_n and_o polestar_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o say_v he_o we_o have_v a_o direct_a rule_n 6._o wardw._n pa._n 6._o squire_n and_o polestarre_n to_o follow_v which_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n in_o which_o word_n he_o make_v rule_n and_o squire_n all_o one_o and_o confound_v the_o church_n which_o be_v rule_v with_o the_o rule_n itself_o such_o a_o lusty_a ruffler_n be_v sir_n robert_n that_o he_o can_v turn_v rule_n into_o squire_n and_o make_v the_o workman_n and_o work_v all_o one_o with_o the_o rule_n he_o do_v also_o maintain_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v proper_o teach_v which_o speech_n if_o it_o be_v proper_a then_o we_o may_v say_v aswell_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n sing_v or_o walk_v or_o do_v any_o singular_a act_n and_o then_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o particular_a action_n may_v be_v do_v of_o general_a body_n it_o will_v follow_v also_o if_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o teach_v which_o be_v absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o relation_n have_v spend_v the_o uttermost_a of_o his_o malice_n in_o scold_v and_o scurrilous_a rail_n in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o answer_n he_o tender_v i_o a_o offer_n that_o if_o i_o will_v go_v forward_o in_o this_o contoversie_n with_o christian_a modesty_n and_o convenient_a term_n of_o civility_n as_o man_n profess_v learning_n ought_v to_o do_v that_o he_o will_v be_v content_a to_o answer_v i_o with_o the_o same_o stile_n but_o therein_o he_o show_v singular_a simplicity_n first_o confess_v that_o himself_o have_v neither_o use_v christian_a modesty_n nor_o convenient_a term_n of_o civility_n nor_o do_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o next_o desire_v other_o to_o hold_v their_o hand_n when_o he_o have_v do_v his_o worst_a &_o fear_v return_v of_o blow_n but_o the_o fool_n must_v not_o think_v to_o escape_v without_o controlment_n have_v shoot_v forth_o so_o many_o bolt_n against_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v he_o therefore_o have_v patience_n to_o hear_v our_o answer_n to_o his_o unchristian_a and_o uncivil_a term_n and_o then_o i_o will_v think_v he_o more_o wise_a in_o make_v his_o offer_n &_o will_v shape_v he_o a_o answer_n by_o his_o own_o cut_n take_v the_o length_n of_o a_o wooden_a fellow_n with_o a_o crabtrée_n measure_n it_o be_v also_o the_o part_n of_o a_o fool_n to_o praise_v himself_o neither_o do_v any_o fall_n into_o their_o own_o extravagant_a praise_n but_o for_o want_v of_o wit_n yet_o do_v this_o fellow_n tell_v we_o of_o his_o memorable_a work_n &_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o epistle_n talk_v of_o his_o own_o merit_n with_o god_n &_o credit_n with_o all_o good_a man_n i_o will_v therefore_o remit_v he_o to_o be_v censure_v by_o a_o old_a grammar_n school_n author_n that_o borrow_v the_o name_n of_o cato_n nec_fw-la te_fw-la collaudes_fw-la nec_fw-la te_fw-la vituperes_fw-la ipsum_fw-la hoc_fw-la faciunt_fw-la stulti_fw-la quos_fw-la gloria_fw-la vexat_fw-la inanis_fw-la and_o because_o he_o be_v a_o big_a burly_n and_o tall_a fellow_n i_o will_v say_v of_o he_o as_o one_o say_v of_o a_o fool_n of_o his_o pitch_n quanta_fw-la est_fw-la longitudo_fw-la &_o profunditas_fw-la tanta_fw-la est_fw-la stultitia_fw-la that_o be_v the_o man_n folly_n reach_v as_o far_o as_o he_o be_v thick_a or_o long_o fol._n 19_o b._n in_o his_o note_n and_o observation_n he_o affirm_v very_o foolish_o that_o all_o pope_n from_o john_n the_o first_o to_o leo_n the_o ten_o be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o then_o shall_v all_o those_o pope_n be_v of_o no_o religion_n of_o john_n the_o 23._o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o do_v affirm_v &_o believe_v constant_a in_o append_v conc._n constant_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n die_v with_o the_o body_n like_v to_o brute_n beast_n &_o that_o man_n body_n do_v not_o rise_v at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o this_o he_o confirm_v with_o other_o article_n exhibit_v against_o he_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n alexander_n the_o sixth_o be_v a_o man_n without_o religion_n humana_fw-la iura_fw-la nec_fw-la minus_fw-la caelestia_fw-la ipsosque_fw-la sustulit_fw-la deos_fw-la say_v one_o of_o he_o that_o be_v he_o take_v away_o the_o law_n of_o man_n law_n of_o god_n and_o god_n himself_o leo_fw-la the_o ten_o do_v not_o otherwise_o account_n of_o the_o gospel_n then_o as_o of_o a_o fable_n as_o his_o word_n to_o cardinal_n bembus_n testify_v the_o like_a may_v be_v affirm_v also_o of_o many_o impious_a pope_n let_v parson_n therefore_o beware_v that_o he_o prove_v not_o his_o consort_n to_o be_v infidel_n and_o himself_o a_o consort_n and_o slave_n of_o infidel_n fol._n 41._o he_o say_v d._n giffard_n have_v his_o deanery_n by_o true_a adoption_n which_o be_v a_o matter_n most_o ridiculous_a for_o other_o have_v their_o deanery_n by_o election_n and_o not_o for_o respect_n of_o kindred_n by_o adoption_n much_o less_o for_o deal_v against_o his_o country_n or_o for_o treason_n fol._n 43._o he_o talk_v of_o chirp_n of_o sparrow_n cackle_v of_o hen_n prattle_v of_o daw_n chide_v of_o woman_n and_o of_o a_o fool_n that_o say_v to_o one_o that_o have_v a_o great_a nose_n that_o he_o have_v no_o nose_n which_o argue_v that_o the_o man_n have_v neither_o nose_n nor_o brain_n nor_o good_a sense_n cackle_v like_o a_o brood_n hen_n chirp_n like_o a_o sparrow_n prattle_v like_o a_o daw_n scold_v like_o a_o butter_n woman_n bray_a like_o a_o ass_n and_o bark_v like_o a_o cur_n fol._n 81._o he_o talk_v of_o the_o patience_n of_o papist_n which_o i_o wonder_v that_o any_o man_n can_v read_v with_o patience_n for_o neither_o do_v they_o teach_v patience_n nor_o practice_v it_o if_o any_o occasion_n be_v give_v to_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o this_o then_o a_o ridiculous_a sot_n to_o talk_v of_o the_o patience_n of_o lombard_n or_o papist_n fol._n 100_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o sum_n &_o corpse_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v deliver_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o miracle_n now_o we_o confess_v it_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o how_o it_o can_v be_v deliver_v by_o miracle_n parson_n will_v be_v much_o encumber_v to_o show_v without_o show_v himself_o a_o wondrous_a wizard_n fol._n 106._o he_o will_v have_v the_o act_n of_o the_o wicked_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n confirm_v and_o allow_v by_o king_n as_o ancient_a emperor_n confirm_v the_o faith_n publish_v in_o the_o nicene_n council_n but_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o desire_v matter_n so_o absurd_a and_o plain_a impiety_n to_o compare_v the_o heretical_a decree_n of_o trent_n with_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n to_o prove_v the_o saintlinesse_n of_o thomas_n becket_n in_o his_o 2._o encontr_n c._n 10._o he_o allege_v the_o pope_n canonisation_n but_o what_o be_v more_o ridiculous_a then_o to_o talk_v to_o we_o of_o the_o pope_n canonisation_n who_o proceed_v common_o by_o hearsay_n &_o without_o party_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v for_o money_n will_v canonize_v a_o horse_n second_o he_o allege_v for_o witness_n herbert_n hoscan_n john_n salisbury_n allen_n of_o teuxbery_n william_n and_o edward_n monk_n of_o canterbury_n peter_n bloys_n and_o other_o but_o all_o these_o witness_n be_v not_o worth_a a_o mess_n of_o teuxbery_n mustard_n for_o what_o avail_v it_o to_o rehearse_v name_n of_o dumb_a idol_n that_o pass_v by_o and_o say_v nothing_o again_o if_o i_o may_v be_v so_o bold_a i_o will_v answer_v parson_n in_o his_o own_o term_n you_o see_v what_o cog_a it_o be_v one_o of_o they_o to_o allege_v another_o fol._n 77._o rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o th._n becket_n out_o of_o hoveden_n do_v you_o not_o seem_v to_o hear_v in_o this_o place_n say_v he_o the_o voice_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n to_o his_o king_n herod_n where_o i_o may_v answer_v he_o with_o his_o own_o word_n and_o say_v not_o unfit_o do_v you_o not_o see_v a_o fellow_n with_o a_o face_n as_o hard_o as_o a_o lopster_n that_o do_v compare_v th._n becket_n and_o his_o cause_n to_o saint_n john_n baptist_n and_o his_o constancy_n the_o first_o contend_v for_o profit_n and_o idle_a paunch_n the_o second_o for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n ridiculous_o also_o he_o compare_v thomas_n becket_n to_o s._n ambrose_n a_o holy_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o say_a thomas_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o idle_a preacher_n of_o privilege_n prejudicial_a to_o prince_n and_o not_o so_o
there_o be_v infinite_a opinion_n among_o they_o that_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n 4._o that_o the_o anabaptist_n rise_v out_o of_o luther_n doctrine_n 5._o that_o there_o be_v a_o potent_a division_n betwixt_o melancthon_n and_o illyricus_n 6._o that_o caluin_n and_o beza_n issue_v from_o zuinglius_fw-la 7._o that_o seruetus_fw-la be_v caluin_n colleague_n and_o that_o he_o and_o valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la and_o other_o heretic_n come_v from_o caluin_n and_o beza_n 8._o that_o we_o admit_v no_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o laugh_v at_o counsel_n 9_o that_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v condemn_v in_o a_o synod_n 10._o that_o out_o of_o our_o synod_n at_o marpurge_n suabach_n and_o smalcald_n we_o depart_v with_o less_o agreement_n than_o before_o as_o lavater_fw-la and_o sleidan_n testify_v 11._o that_o melancthon_n to_o prove_v the_o zwinglians_n to_o be_v obstinate_a heretic_n gather_v together_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n 12._o that_o zuinglius_fw-la die_v in_o rebellion_n against_o his_o country_n 13._o that_o oecolampadius_n be_v find_v dead_a in_o bed_n by_o his_o wife_n side_n strangle_v by_o the_o devil_n as_o luther_n hold_v lib._n de_fw-fr privata_fw-la missa_fw-la or_o kill_v by_o his_o wife_n 14._o that_o great_a war_n arise_v between_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n as_o he_o call_v they_o 15._o that_o luther_n be_v the_o first_o father_n of_o our_o gospel_n which_o he_o call_v new_a 16._o that_o stankare_o be_v a_o protestant_n as_o he_o call_v he_o 17._o that_o chemnitius_n in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o elector_n of_o brandeburg_n do_v censure_v the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o the_o religion_n here_o profess_v 18._o that_o there_o be_v war_n and_o dissension_n in_o england_n in_o most_o principal_a point_n of_o religion_n he_o do_v also_o rehearse_v diverse_a other_o point_n which_o be_v all_o utter_o false_a and_o untrue_a for_o first_o oecolampadius_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la be_v learned_a man_n aswell_o as_o luther_n and_o teach_v truth_n before_o they_o know_v he_o carolstadius_n also_o teach_v matter_n never_o learn_v of_o he_o second_o except_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o which_o the_o papist_n do_v differ_v more_o than_o any_o other_o all_o consent_v with_o luther_n in_o most_o thing_n and_o in_o this_o do_v modest_o dissent_v from_o he_o three_o those_o imagine_a different_a opinion_n among_o they_o that_o dissallow_v the_o real_a presence_n can_v be_v prove_v let_v parson_n show_v where_o they_o be_v now_o maintain_v and_o by_o who_o 4._o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o luther_n teach_v always_o contrary_a to_o the_o anabaptist_n as_o his_o writing_n show_v 5._o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o either_o melancthon_n condemn_v illyricus_n or_o contrariwise_o 6._o caluin_n and_o beza_n have_v their_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o from_o zuinglius_fw-la 7._o seruetus_fw-la be_v a_o spaniard_n and_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o heretic_n and_o no_o colleague_n of_o caluin_n nay_o by_o his_o mean_n his_o heresy_n be_v first_o detect_v and_o refute_v and_o he_o punish_v 8._o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v that_o we_o admit_v no_o judge_n and_o laugh_v at_o general_a counsel_n for_o we_o esteem_v they_o high_o and_o admit_v the_o censure_n of_o any_o judge_n proceed_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n 9_o the_o condemnation_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la in_o a_o synod_n be_v a_o mere_a fiction_n the_o 10._o lie_n be_v refute_v by_o lavater_fw-la and_o sleidan_n sleidan_n say_v they_o agree_v at_o marpurge_n 7._o lib._n 7._o that_o see_v they_o consent_v in_o the_o chief_a point_n after_o that_o they_o shall_v abstain_v from_o all_o contention_n quandoquidem_fw-la in_o praecipuis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la idem_fw-la sentirent_fw-la abstinendum_fw-la esse_fw-la deinceps_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la contentione_n the_o 11._o lie_n be_v refute_v by_o melancthons_n whole_a work_n where_o it_o be_v not_o find_v that_o ever_o he_o call_v his_o brethren_n heretic_n or_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v they_o so_o nay_o his_o principal_a study_n be_v unity_n and_o peace_n 12._o zuinglius_fw-la die_v accompany_v his_o countryman_n of_o zuricke_n in_o the_o battle_n against_o other_o canton_n of_o suizzerland_n and_o stand_v for_o his_o country_n not_o against_o his_o country_n 13._o oecolampadius_n die_v in_o peace_n neither_o do_v luther_n ever_o write_v of_o he_o that_o which_o the_o papist_n have_v report_v 14._o the_o name_n of_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n we_o have_v detest_v and_o if_o any_o contention_n be_v betwixt_o those_o that_o favour_v luther_n or_o zuinglius_fw-la yet_o be_v it_o rather_o private_a then_o public_a 15._o our_o religion_n we_o claim_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o from_o luther_n and_o so_o do_v other_o reform_a church_n 16._o stankare_o we_o condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n 17._o the_o letter_n suppose_v to_o be_v write_v by_o chemnitius_n against_o the_o queen_n be_v too_o ridiculous_a to_o proceed_v from_o he_o the_o same_o do_v rather_o savour_n of_o the_o blackesmiths_n forge_n of_o papist_n 18._o in_o england_n there_o be_v no_o public_a contention_n nor_o do_v private_a man_n such_o special_o as_o be_v repute_v among_o we_o as_o brethren_n contend_v about_o matter_n of_o salvation_n as_o for_o those_o contention_n that_o have_v be_v about_o ceremony_n they_o by_o the_o king_n wisdom_n be_v end_v to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o parson_n and_o other_o enemy_n of_o our_o peace_n wherefore_o unless_o parson_n can_v bring_v better_a proof_n than_o rescius_fw-la stancarus_n staphylus_n and_o such_o like_a bark_a cur_n of_o his_o own_o kennel_n both_o he_o and_o they_o will_v be_v take_v for_o wicked_a and_o shameless_a forger_n of_o lie_n and_o slander_n have_v belie_v we_o before_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o encounter_n he_o tell_v lie_v also_o of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o own_o consort_n first_o he_o say_v if_o papist_n be_v idolater_n that_o this_o error_n be_v universal_o receive_v among_o they_o but_o that_o follow_v not_o for_o all_o papist_n have_v not_o one_o opinion_n of_o saint_n of_o relic_n of_o image_n of_o saint_n the_o second_o nicene_n council_n deni_v that_o latria_n be_v due_a to_o image_n or_o that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o christian_n some_o hold_n that_o not_o the_o image_n but_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v to_o be_v worship_v many_o hold_v contrary_a all_o give_v not_o divine_a worship_n to_o the_o cross_n nor_o pray_v to_o it_o in_o one_o sort_n final_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr imaginibus_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr sanctis_fw-la do_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v many_o different_a opinion_n among_o the_o worshipper_n of_o image_n second_o parson_n deny_v that_o papist_n be_v idolater_n but_o lactantius_n lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la divin_v c._n 19_o and_o other_o father_n show_n that_o all_o be_v idolater_n that_o give_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n to_o creature_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v honour_v the_o sacrament_n the_o cross_n and_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o divine_a worship_n this_o point_n be_v also_o full_o prove_v against_o the_o papist_n in_o my_o last_o challenge_n chap._n 5._o three_o he_o say_v most_o false_o that_o all_o friar_n and_o monk_n profess_v one_o faith_n without_o any_o difference_n in_o any_o one_o article_n of_o belief_n the_o falsehood_n of_o his_o assertion_n i_o have_v show_v by_o diverse_a instance_n heretofore_o four_o he_o say_v the_o papist_n may_v have_v a_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o we_o have_v a_o woman_n for_o the_o head_n but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n then_o of_o one_o realm_n again_o we_o call_v the_o king_n supreme_a governor_n for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a man_n of_o his_o realm_n and_o chief_a disposer_n of_o external_a matter_n but_o they_o give_v one_o consistory_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n furthermore_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o say_v all_o prince_n ought_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o doctrine_n the_o pope_n will_v be_v equal_a to_o they_o if_o not_o above_o they_o and_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o absolute_o as_o christ_n jesus_n final_o he_o say_v difference_n of_o habit_n or_o particular_a manner_n of_o life_n break_v not_o unity_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v those_o that_o say_v i_o hold_v of_o paul_n lucifer_n adverse_a lucifer_n i_o of_o apollo_n i_o of_o cephas_n and_o hierome_n say_v if_o you_o shall_v hear_v at_o any_o time_n those_o which_o be_v call_v christian_n to_o take_v their_o name_n of_o any_o but_o our_o lord_n jesus_n as_o for_o example_n the_o marcionist_n &_o valentinian_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n this_o therefore_o be_v
he_o cry_v out_o of_o two_o apparent_a abuse_n calumniation_n and_o flattery_n and_o why_o forsooth_o because_o parson_n be_v accuse_v to_o rejoice_v that_o her_o majesty_n year_n grow_v on_o so_o fast_o and_o because_o sir_n francis_n do_v pray_v for_o the_o prolongation_n of_o her_o day_n to_o the_o hold_v out_o still_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o if_o it_o be_v flattery_n to_o pray_v for_o her_o majesty_n long_a life_n and_o not_o lawful_a so_o to_o do_v or_o else_o as_o if_o all_o the_o world_n know_v not_o that_o parson_n by_o publish_v sanders_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la and_o diverse_a libel_n have_v seek_v her_o disgrace_n and_o both_o by_o war_n and_o treason_n to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o his_o power_n procure_v her_o destruction_n but_o say_v parson_n it_o may_v be_v presume_v that_o the_o essexian_a assault_n will_v have_v abbreviate_v this_o still_o where_o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o beside_o the_o slander_n of_o this_o noble_a earl_n he_o confess_v that_o if_o that_o action_n have_v take_v effect_n the_o pope_n authority_n will_v not_o have_v be_v still_o hold_v out_o by_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o by_o the_o treachery_n of_o some_o hollow_a heart_a papist_n this_o noble_a earl_n be_v bring_v to_o destruction_n fol._n 9_o most_o impudent_o he_o affirm_v that_o nothing_o be_v answer_v to_o his_o discourse_n of_o emolument_n of_o toleration_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o of_o the_o hurt_n that_o have_v come_v of_o alteration_n of_o religion_n as_o if_o popish_a religion_n be_v prove_v false_a idolatrous_a and_o disastrous_a to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o his_o discourse_n do_v not_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o this_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o such_o combatant_n to_o cry_v victory_n when_o they_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o field_n likewise_o he_o cry_v out_o manifest_a untruth_n because_o sir_n francis_n say_v he_o be_v first_o call_v into_o the_o field_n by_o parson_n but_o as_o well_o may_v the_o thief_n say_v that_o the_o peaceable_a traveller_n that_o give_v warning_n to_o all_o to_o beware_v of_o thief_n provoke_v the_o thief_n to_o set_v upon_o he_o the_o spaniard_n be_v ready_a to_o come_v for_o england_n sir_n francis_n give_v the_o alarm_n out_o come_v captain_n cowbucke_n like_o a_o cutthroat_n and_o set_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o wardword_n be_v it_o not_o he_o than_o that_o begin_v this_o brawl_n and_o do_v not_o he_o in_o favour_n of_o public_a enemy_n make_v himself_o ready_a to_o cut_v our_o throat_n fol._n 11._o he_o say_v my_o preface_n tend_v whole_o to_o bloodshed_n but_o this_o grievous_a accusation_n require_v some_o more_o proof_n than_o he_o bring_v notwithstanding_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o allege_v his_o first_o persuasion_n say_v he_o be_v by_o extol_v exceed_o she_o majesty_n extraordinary_a clemency_n as_o if_o the_o praise_n of_o a_o prince_n clemency_n be_v a_o persuasion_n to_o cruelty_n or_o as_o if_o parson_n commend_v pope_n clement_n clemency_n persuade_v he_o to_o rigour_n who_o ever_o hear_v such_o a_o witless_a speak_v another_o reason_n he_o imagine_v i_o to_o have_v draw_v from_o the_o meaning_n of_o papist_n but_o like_o a_o unskilful_a archer_n he_o neither_o hit_v my_o reason_n nor_o intention_n he_o be_v therefore_o to_o learn_v that_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o arm_v her_o majesty_n against_o parson_n and_o his_o consort_n treason_n and_o rather_o to_o secure_v the_o state_n then_o to_o use_v violence_n to_o any_o but_o such_o as_o by_o all_o mean_v oppugn_v the_o state_n and_o seek_v by_o treachery_n to_o undermine_v the_o state_n where_o i_o show_v that_o heretic_n 14._o fol._n 14._o idolater_n &_o traitor_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v &_o therefore_o factious_a papist_n he_o say_v thus_o to_o reason_n at_o random_n be_v much_o like_a to_o boy_n argument_v in_o sophistry_n and_o yet_o he_o with_o all_o his_o logic_n shall_v never_o answer_v this_o argument_n consider_v that_o i_o have_v prove_v robert_n parson_n and_o his_o consort_n to_o be_v heretic_n idolater_n and_o traitor_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la nay_o w._n r._n in_o his_o clear_a confutation_n confess_v so_o much_o not_o answer_v any_o of_o my_o argument_n but_o say_v he_o show_v i_o one_o example_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christendom_n that_o ever_o man_n or_o woman_n in_o any_o age_n be_v punish_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o christian_a common_a wealth_n for_o stick_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o i_o have_v not_o show_v that_o angelike_n carpocratian_o challenge_n in_o my_o challenge_n marcionist_n manicheys_n prince-killing_a circumcellion_n and_o assassin_n pelagian_n collyridian_n crosse-worshipper_n and_o diverse_a other_o hold_v the_o same_o point_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n profess_v have_v be_v condemn_v and_o punish_v for_o heretic_n fol._n 15._o he_o cry_v out_o folly_n and_o impudence_n in_o prove_v that_o idolater_n and_o heretic_n be_v by_o law_n to_o be_v repress_v but_o he_o dissemble_v cunning_o whatsoever_o be_v otherwise_o bring_v by_o i_o to_o prove_v papist_n to_o be_v idolater_n and_o heretic_n he_o pass_v by_o also_o two_o greek_a sentence_n take_v out_o of_o euripides_n and_o aeschines_n for_o to_o he_o greek_a be_v of_o hard_a digestion_n final_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v of_o the_o papist_n for_o rail_v against_o the_o queen_n in_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la anglicano_n set_v out_o under_o sanders_n his_o name_n and_o in_o other_o libel_n parson_n do_v whole_o omit_v and_o yet_o he_o make_v a_o show_n as_o if_o he_o will_v answer_v all_o writhing_z his_o face_n like_o a_o old_a ape_n swallow_v pill_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o note_v as_o he_o say_v a_o contradiction_n betwixt_o sir_n francis_n and_o i_o but_o the_o contradiction_n be_v in_o his_o understanding_n and_o not_o between_o us._n for_o neither_o will_v i_o nor_o he_o have_v simple_a papist_n punish_v with_o death_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o s._n augustine_n concern_v simple_a heretic_n nor_o do_v sir_n francis_n deny_v but_o that_o factious_a dogmatize_v and_o obstinate_a heretic_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n which_o both_o s._n augustine_n and_o i_o myself_o affirm_v fol._n 16._o b._n he_o give_v out_o that_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n rom._n 16._o where_o he_o will_v have_v such_o mark_v diligent_o as_o cause_v division_n and_o offence_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_n have_v receive_v make_v direct_o against_o we_o and_o not_o against_o the_o papist_n but_o then_o he_o must_v show_v that_o we_o have_v forsake_v the_o doctrine_n preach_v to_o the_o roman_n and_o they_o not_o he_o must_v i_o say_v show_v that_o s._n paul_n teach_v that_o clement_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o spouse_n and_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v corporal_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o in_o as_o many_o place_n as_o be_v the_o sacrament_n that_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v without_o their_o substance_n that_o a_o christian_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n that_o latria_fw-la be_v due_a to_o the_o cross_n that_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o saint_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n or_o else_o he_o shall_v make_v a_o direct_a lie_n where_o he_o say_v these_o word_n make_v direct_o against_o us._n 17._o fol._n 17._o have_v rehearse_v the_o law_n cunctos_fw-la populos_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n &_o fid_fw-we cath._n he_o cry_v out_o and_o will_v we_o to_o tell_v he_o whether_o the_o same_o touch_v not_o us._n but_o if_o we_o tell_v he_o true_a it_o will_v make_v little_a for_o his_o comfort_n for_o we_o neither_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n that_o be_v in_o damasus_n his_o time_n nor_o do_v we_o digress_v from_o the_o faith_n mention_v in_o that_o law_n which_o parson_n like_o a_o falsary_a cut_v out_o see_v it_o make_v not_o for_o his_o purpose_n but_o see_v true_a christian_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o now_o be_v why_o shall_v christian_n communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o sect_n see_v they_o have_v embrace_v a_o number_n of_o novelty_n and_o heresy_n and_o publish_v they_o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v unknown_a to_o damasus_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n long_o after_o his_o time_n fol._n 20._o he_o complain_v of_o injury_n offer_v by_o the_o watchword_n as_o a_o famous_a libel_n as_o well_o to_o great_a foreign_a prince_n and_o nation_n as_o to_o honourable_a worshipful_a and_o honest_a subject_n whereas_o whosoever_o read_v the_o book_n shall_v find_v that_o sir_n francis_n speak_v only_o against_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o notorious_a traitor_n if_o then_o
which_o he_o term_v catholic_n as_o if_o such_o may_v play_v the_o traitor_n and_o join_v with_o public_a enemy_n open_o and_o lawful_o the_o papist_n be_v charge_v for_o maintain_v the_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitane_n that_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a to_o do_v almost_o all_o thing_n which_o christ_n can_v do_v except_o sin_n he_o think_v to_o shift_v off_o the_o matter_n by_o speak_v with_o panormitan_n b._n fol._n 29_o b._n that_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n with_o the_o key_n of_o discretion_n that_o err_v not_o but_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o presume_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v discretion_n and_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o in_o the_o determination_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o can_v err_v whereas_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o pope_n come_v into_o the_o church_n not_o with_o key_n but_o with_o pickelocke_n and_o iron_n bar_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o use_v the_o key_n as_o sword_n and_o club_n and_o that_o also_o without_o discretion_n or_o reason_n kill_v all_o that_o speak_v against_o his_o triple_a crown_n where_o i_o say_v that_o such_o english_a as_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n have_v renounce_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o queen_n he_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n 13._o fol._n 13._o france_n poland_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n that_o have_v not_o renounce_v their_o obedience_n to_o their_o prince_n but_o his_o shift_n be_v most_o ridiculous_a for_o the_o pope_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n and_o not_o to_o they_o but_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o pope_n happen_v to_o excommunicate_v any_o of_o these_o prince_n then_o be_v it_o clear_a that_o such_o subject_n as_o follow_v the_o pope_n can_v by_o any_o mean_n adhere_v to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n unless_o parson_n can_v show_v how_o a_o man_n can_v please_v two_o contrary_a master_n and_o can_v himself_o serve_v both_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n fol._n 28._o and_o 29._o he_o run_v out_o into_o a_o large_a exposition_n of_o these_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitan_n quod_fw-la papa_n potest_fw-la quasi_fw-la omne_fw-la facere_fw-la quae_fw-la christus_fw-la excepto_fw-la peccato_fw-la but_o all_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o he_o shall_v show_v that_o these_o fellow_n do_v not_o flatter_v the_o pope_n and_o not_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o their_o foolery_n which_o as_o they_o be_v exorbitant_a so_o be_v they_o unpleasant_a in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v it_o be_v no_o more_o adsurditie_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v do_v almost_o all_o that_o christ_n can_v except_o sin_n then_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n can_v do_v all_o that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n can_v do_v in_o that_o kingdom_n except_o be_v free_a from_o treason_n but_o first_o the_o word_n of_o hostiensis_n and_o panormitan_n import_v that_o christ_n can_v sin_v be_v blasphemous_a albeit_o they_o mean_v that_o except_o avoid_v sin_n the_o pope_n can_v do_v all_o that_o christ_n can_v do_v second_o it_o be_v a_o simple_a shift_n to_o make_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n like_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n like_o the_o pope_n or_o else_o to_o compare_v these_o two_o speech_n together_o final_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o viceroy_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n can_v for_o he_o can_v neither_o move_v war_n alienate_v the_o territory_n nor_o do_v infinite_a other_o matter_n else_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v god_n and_o man_n then_o between_o man_n and_o man_n here_o therefore_o parson_n talk_v of_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n play_v the_o advise_n and_o show_v that_o he_o have_v the_o neapolitan_a scab_n in_o his_o brain_n fol._n 30._o the_o canonist_n be_v charge_v for_o call_v the_o pope_n their_o lord_n &_o god_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o can_v find_v it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v because_o his_o nodyship_n can_v find_v it_o or_o else_o as_o if_o a_o cardinal_n hat_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o rome_n because_o parson_n can_v not_o find_v it_o let_v he_o therefore_o look_v the_o gloss_n in_o c._n inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la extr_n joan_n 22._o de_fw-fr verb._n signif_n and_o it_o may_v be_v with_o the_o help_n of_o his_o spectacle_n and_o a_o draught_n of_o gréeke_n wine_n he_o may_v find_v it_o oh_o may_v his_o brother_n say_v that_o he_o can_v as_o easy_o find_v a_o cardinal_n hat_n of_o five_o place_n allege_v by_o sir_n francis_n for_o proof_n of_o the_o flattery_n of_o popish_a parasite_n he_o touch_v only_o two_o be_v not_o able_a to_o justify_v either_o of_o they_o to_o be_v void_a of_o flattery_n three_o place_n he_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n which_o it_o may_v please_v he_o to_o answer_v in_o his_o next_o one_o say_v that_o no_o less_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o the_o pope_n then_o to_o angel_n another_o that_o the_o emperor_n majesty_n be_v as_o much_o inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o creature_n to_o god_n the_o three_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v ens_fw-la secundae_fw-la intentionis_fw-la compound_v of_o god_n and_o man_n if_o then_o he_o mean_v to_o answer_v let_v he_o show_v how_o these_o speech_n be_v void_a either_o of_o flattery_n or_o blasphemy_n if_o he_o purpose_v to_o show_v himself_o void_a of_o dizardry_n 37._o fol._n 37._o where_o i_o bring_v example_n and_o instance_n of_o notorious_a flattery_n out_o of_o canonist_n he_o say_v they_o be_v the_o same_o for_o the_o most_o part_n which_o sir_n francis_n bring_v before_o and_o be_v before_o answer_v matter_n most_o false_a and_o poor_o shift_v off_o for_o neither_o be_v they_o the_o same_o nor_o have_v he_o answer_v any_o thing_n unto_o they_o nay_o of_o five_o that_o sir_n francis_n bring_v he_o answer_v only_o two_o and_o they_o very_o lewd_o loose_o and_o unsufficient_o and_o of_o a_o dozen_o bring_v by_o i_o touch_v scarce_o two_o will_v not_o he_o then_o be_v turn_v back_o with_o a_o dozen_o stripe_n to_o turn_v over_o these_o dozen_o place_n and_o will_v he_o not_o be_v discard_v for_o a_o knavish_a answerer_n that_o say_v nothing_o to_o that_o which_o i_o say_v of_o our_o deliverance_n by_o the_o queen_n from_o the_o captivity_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o israelite_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o captivity_n of_o jabin_n and_o the_o canaanite_n by_o deborah_n that_o which_o i_o say_v of_o the_o flattery_n of_o giffard_n and_o parson_n concern_v their_o flatter_a of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n he_o slip_v over_o with_o a_o few_o word_n concern_v the_o largeness_n of_o the_o india_n but_o what_o make_v that_o for_o the_o king_n greatness_n unless_o he_o hold_v that_o country_n with_o more_o assurance_n and_o better_a title_n concern_v the_o flattery_n of_o stapleton_n bellarmine_n and_o other_o which_o i_o object_n in_o the_o 10._o page_n of_o my_o reply_n he_o say_v nothing_o no_o ape_n can_v better_o skip_v over_o the_o chain_n than_o parson_n skip_v over_o all_o our_o objection_n for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o rebellious_a attempt_n of_o the_o leaguer_n in_o france_n and_o other_o popish_a disloyalty_n against_o prince_n he_o tell_v we_o 2._o encon_n c._n 13._o that_o when_o the_o apostle_n preach_v against_o the_o jewish_a magistrate_n commandment_n it_o seem_v to_o the_o jew_n disloyalty_n but_o be_v not_o but_o this_o be_v a_o most_o poor_a shift_n for_o the_o papist_n have_v not_o only_o preach_v against_o the_o prince_n commandment_n but_o also_o have_v murder_v they_o and_o prosecute_v they_o with_o arm_n which_o the_o apostle_n never_o do_v or_o think_v lawful_a be_v not_o this_o jebusite_n therefore_o a_o false_a apostle_n to_o pretend_v the_o apostle_n example_n for_o maintenance_n of_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n fol._n 104._o he_o shift_v off_o this_o argument_n the_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v as_o christ_n therefore_o if_o he_o command_v blasphemy_n by_o say_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o and_o that_o this_o folly_n be_v no_o less_o ridiculous_a then_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v the_o neapolitan_n profess_v obedience_n unto_o their_o viceroy_n as_o to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v if_o he_o command_v treason_n against_o the_o king_n but_o his_o answer_n be_v so_o learned_a and_o wise_a that_o parson_n for_o the_o same_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v vizeroy_n or_o rather_o a_o advise_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o fool_n for_o first_o no_o man_n will_v affirm_v that_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n can_v err_v but_o that_o be_v deny_v in_o christ_n viceroy_n the_o pope_n the_o case_n therefore_o be_v unlike_a furthermore_o papist_n will_v obey_v the_o pope_n if_o he_o command_v heresy_n or_o blasphemy_n
because_o they_o take_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v infallible_a albeit_o the_o neapolitan_n will_v not_o follow_v their_o viceroy_n in_o his_o rebellion_n likewise_o do_v he_o absurd_o shift_v off_o the_o objection_n concern_v the_o absolute_a obedience_n require_v of_o christian_n by_o boniface_n the_o 8._o he_o say_v also_o that_o it_o stand_v with_o god_n providence_n to_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o error_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o church_n and_o not_o rather_o antichrist_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n or_o as_o if_o the_o church_n can_v not_o stand_v if_o the_o pope_n be_v dead_a and_o parson_n hang_v by_o he_o to_o bear_v he_o company_n and_o to_o lead_v he_o through_o purgatory_n be_v not_o able_a to_o walk_v of_o himself_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o gout_n fol._n 113._o 2._o encont_v c._n 14._o he_o say_v that_o parry_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o discover_v no_o intention_n at_o all_o of_o any_o particular_a enterprise_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o thereby_o will_v shift_v off_o our_o objection_n concern_v the_o intelligence_n the_o pope_n have_v of_o his_o purpose_n to_o kill_v the_o queen_n but_o his_o shift_n be_v very_o simple_a for_o albeit_o he_o say_v nothing_o yet_o the_o letter_n of_o credit_n include_v from_o some_o great_a man_n to_o who_o he_o impart_v the_o secret_a disclose_v all_o now_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o cardinal_n comoes_n letter_n that_o the_o pope_n receive_v parry_v letter_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n of_o credit_n include_v la_fw-fr santitá_fw-la di_fw-it n.s._n say_v cardinal_n como_n ha_o vedute_a le_fw-fr lettere_fw-la di_fw-it v.s._n con_v la_fw-fr fede_fw-it inclusa_fw-la by_o this_o than_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n grant_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n to_o a_o murderer_n that_o go_v to_o kill_v a_o innocent_a queen_n be_v also_o a_o most_o execrable_a murderer_n and_o no_o shepherd_n a_o limb_n of_o satan_n that_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o begin_n and_o not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n a_o wolf_n and_o no_o christian_a bishop_n yea_o but_o say_v parson_n this_o indulgence_n take_v effect_v if_o parry_n be_v contrite_a and_o confess_v of_o his_o sin_n as_o if_o these_o wicked_a murderer_n do_v not_o account_v it_o a_o act_n meritorious_a to_o kill_v a_o prince_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n so_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o this_o respect_n rather_o he_o obtain_v this_o indulgence_n nay_o if_o ch._n p._n say_v true_a robert_n parson_n be_v also_o acquaint_v with_o parries_n particular_a treason_n so_o that_o this_o will_v not_o only_o remain_v as_o a_o perpetual_a blot_n of_o indulgence_n but_o also_o of_o the_o barbarous_a treachery_n both_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o his_o bastardly_a proctor_n that_o set_v on_o this_o cutthroat_n to_o murder_v a_o innocent_a lady_n do_v it_o not_o then_o plain_o appear_v howsoever_o close_o parson_n will_v seem_v to_o carry_v matter_n that_o he_o do_v confess_v more_o in_o shift_v and_o conceal_v than_o he_o do_v deny_v dispute_v ita_fw-la opertus_fw-la ac_fw-la tectus_fw-la incedis_fw-la say_v hierom_n to_o one_o epist_n 6._o ut_fw-la plus_fw-la confitearis_fw-la tacendo_fw-la quàm_fw-la renuas_fw-la disputando_fw-la this_o we_o may_v true_o say_v of_o parson_n that_o his_o shift_n and_o answer_n which_o he_o bring_v to_o cover_v the_o wound_n of_o his_o cause_n do_v make_v the_o matter_n far_o more_o suspicious_a than_o before_o what_o then_o be_v we_o to_o think_v of_o such_o a_o shift_a and_o juggle_a fellow_n will_v you_o hear_v parson_n give_v sentence_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n if_o he_o do_v i_o hope_v you_o will_v say_v we_o do_v produce_v no_o witness_n that_o will_v deal_v partial_o in_o favour_n of_o our_o cause_n but_o he_o in_o his_o 2._o encon_n c._n 9_o fol._n 62._o say_v that_o he_o which_o use_v a_o trick_n of_o legierdemain_n but_o once_o of_o know_v and_o set_v malice_n to_o deceive_v be_v never_o to_o be_v trust_v again_o what_o then_o remain_v now_o but_o that_o such_o a_o shift_a &_o treacherous_a companion_n be_v rather_o truss_v then_o trust_v haltre_v then_o harbour_v bafful_v then_o beléeve_v chap._n xiii_o parson_n his_o patcherie_n in_o beg_a thing_n in_o controversy_n discover_v the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o adversary_n and_o often_o mention_v of_o controversy_n if_o nothing_o else_o i_o think_v may_v have_v move_v robert_n parson_n to_o look_v better_o to_o his_o proof_n and_o to_o have_v presume_v less_o of_o his_o beg_n for_o albeit_o he_o be_v of_o the_o ignatian_n sect_n and_o by_o profession_n a_o mendicant_a friar_n yet_o have_v he_o no_o reason_n to_o beg_v of_o his_o adversary_n nor_o to_o take_v as_o grant_v thing_n that_o hang_v in_o controversy_n nor_o have_v we_o cause_n to_o maintain_v of_o alm_n such_o vagrant_a sturdy_a rogue_v beggar_n as_o the_o law_n judge_v worthy_a of_o hang_v it_o may_v be_v he_o will_v stand_v upon_o term_n and_o swear_v like_o a_o hackster_n that_o he_o be_v no_o beggar_n treatise_n testify_v by_o the_o secular_a priest_n in_o diverse_a of_o their_o treatise_n bestow_v many_o thousand_o of_o crown_n upon_o spy_n and_o cutthroat_n but_o the_o truth_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o sequel_n of_o his_o do_n fol._n 1._o b._n he_o accuse_v i_o of_o deportment_n against_o all_o kind_n of_o catholic_a man_n though_o never_o so_o learned_a virtuous_a worshipful_a or_o honourable_a but_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v himself_o &_o his_o traitorous_a consort_n which_o be_v the_o man_n that_o i_o do_v mean_a to_o be_v both_o catholic_n and_o learned_a virtuous_a worshipful_a and_o honourable_a we_o of_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a sort_n can_v yet_o never_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n either_o honourable_a or_o commendable_a to_o betray_v his_o prince_n or_o country_n or_o to_o take_v part_n with_o italian_n or_o spaniard_n against_o his_o own_o nation_n fol._n 7._o talk_v of_o priest_n put_v to_o death_n in_o england_n he_o call_v they_o and_o other_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o say_v they_o suffer_v for_o ancient_a religion_n but_o we_o look_v for_o proof_n and_o not_o for_o bare_a and_o beggarly_a affirmation_n for_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n come_v never_o to_o depose_v prince_n from_o their_o throne_n nay_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v plain_o that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o these_o massepriest_n as_o appear_v by_o record_n and_o by_o their_o confession_n and_o the_o pope_n faculty_n grant_v to_o they_o come_v for_o that_o purpose_n second_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o our_o challenge_n that_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o faith_n which_o we_o profess_v in_o england_n be_v neither_o catholic_a nor_o ancient_a last_o we_o have_v there_o also_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v culpable_a of_o treason_n and_o to_o have_v die_v for_o that_o &_o not_o for_o their_o religion_n though_o otherwise_o very_o lousy_a and_o beggarly_a vellaco_n and_o as_o beggarly_a defend_v by_o this_o beg_n and_o cousine_v companion_n in_o the_o same_o leaf_n also_o he_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o masspriest_n captain_n and_o master_n and_o that_o he_o assure_v they_o on_o his_o honour_n and_o power_n that_o no_o one_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n shall_v perish_v in_o the_o end_n he_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v they_o martyr_n but_o to_o prove_v his_o matter_n he_o allege_v neither_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n nor_o sentence_n of_o father_n nay_o where_o the_o romish_n church_n teach_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o salvation_n without_o special_a revelation_n yet_o this_o disciple_n of_o antichrist_n affirm_v that_o christ_n upon_o his_o honour_n have_v assure_v campian_n ballard_n babington_n and_o i_o think_v lopez_n too_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o perish_v for_o of_o these_o i_o think_v he_o speak_v to_o show_v they_o to_o be_v no_o martyr_n i_o have_v allege_v diverse_a reason_n reason_n then_o will_v that_o if_o he_o will_v have_v win_v credit_n he_o shall_v have_v either_o answer_v our_o reason_n or_o prove_v his_o own_o cause_n by_o argument_n in_o his_o observation_n upon_o my_o preface_n and_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o his_o book_n he_o give_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n to_o papist_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v that_o this_o be_v a_o main_a controversy_n betwixt_o us._n what_o punishment_n then_o do_v he_o deserve_v that_o witting_o and_o wilful_o will_v beg_v or_o rather_o steal_v that_o which_o belong_v not_o unto_o he_o fol._n 14._o most_o impudent_o he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n and_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o christ_n commonwealth_n unto_o papist_n that_o be_v neither_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o part_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o we_o he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o protestant_n puritan_n and_o lutheran_n which_o we_o renounce_v profess_v only_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n
see_v christ_n true_a body_n lurk_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o masse-cake_n his_o blood_n by_o a_o necessary_a concomitance_n as_o they_o say_v be_v not_o far_o off_o this_o fellow_n as_o a_o mass-priest_n be_v think_v a_o fit_a person_n to_o speak_v for_o the_o mass_n and_o as_o a_o spy_n and_o renegade_n englishman_n to_o speak_v shame_n of_o his_o country_n and_o to_o defend_v traitor_n and_o yet_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v as_o fit_a to_o dispute_v of_o the_o mass_a religion_n and_o popish_a subtlety_n as_o a_o ass_n to_o play_v a_o anthem_n upon_o a_o pair_n of_o organ_n the_o true_a author_n of_o the_o book_n as_o his_o stile_n declare_v and_o the_o dealer_n in_o the_o edition_n must_v needs_o witness_v be_v robert_n parson_n a_o old_a hackster_n in_o missifical_a quarrel_n and_o a_o great_a dealer_n in_o matter_n of_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o one_o that_o use_v at_o his_o pleasure_n to_o borrow_v other_o man_n name_n now_o call_v himself_o captain_n cowbucke_n now_o dolman_n now_o john_n houlet_n now_o n.d._n or_o noddy_n now_o t.f._n or_o tom_n fop_n now_o robert_n parson_n under_o the_o name_n of_o dolman_n he_o set_v out_o his_o traitorous_a &_o seditious_a book_n of_o succession_n in_o disgrace_n of_o the_o king_n title_n under_o the_o name_n of_o john_n houlet_n he_o publish_v certain_a idle_a reason_n of_o refusal_n himself_o never_o refuse_v to_o attempt_v any_o mischief_n against_o the_o state_n under_o the_o title_n of_o n._n d._n he_o set_v out_o his_o wardword_n and_o warneword_n stigmatise_v his_o manship_n with_o the_o perpetual_a note_n of_o a_o noddy_n imply_v by_o those_o two_o letter_n n._n d._n and_o this_o course_n he_o take_v in_o t.f._n his_o apology_n the_o second_o be_v entitle_v a_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o be_v set_v out_o by_o robert_n parson_n also_o under_o the_o old_a stamp_n of_o n._n d._n who_o signification_n every_o child_n now_o know_v to_o be_v noddy_n but_o why_o he_o shall_v write_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o his_o country_n to_o religion_n we_o can_v see_v no_o reason_n see_v we_o have_v know_v he_o always_o more_o studious_a of_o the_o subversion_n then_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o england_n and_o his_o consort_n the_o mass_n priest_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o be_v a_o machiavelian_a pack_v fellow_n void_a of_o religion_n and_o honesty_n the_o turn_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o turn_v of_o jacket_n have_v be_v a_o more_o fit_a subject_n for_o he_o to_o handle_v see_v he_o turn_v &_o skip_v so_o oft_o about_o the_o altar_n like_o a_o ape_n dance_v about_o a_o maypole_n and_o have_v turn_v his_o coat_n so_o often_o from_o english_a to_o romish_a from_o scottish_a to_o spanish_a from_o all_o to_o french_a that_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n fear_v unless_o he_o turn_v cardinal_n that_o he_o will_v turn_v turk_n the_o three_o be_v call_v a_o survey_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n and_o be_v devise_v by_o a_o renegued_a fugitive_n englishman_n who_o have_v survey_v diverse_a other_o country_n and_o yet_o never_o find_v any_o settlement_n in_o his_o brain_n or_o habitation_n like_a cain_n he_o have_v be_v long_o a_o vagrant_a fugitive_n fellow_n vagus_fw-la &_o profugus_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la and_o seek_v if_o not_o to_o kill_v yet_o to_o slander_v his_o countryman_n and_o friend_n impute_v unto_o they_o most_o horrible_a opinion_n and_o crime_n it_o rest_v then_o that_o we_o set_v upon_o he_o a_o mark_n as_o upon_o cain_n that_o every_o man_n may_v know_v he_o for_o a_o suppost_n of_o satan_n although_o herein_o we_o need_v not_o much_o to_o travel_v see_v the_o first_o letter_n of_o kellisons_n name_n who_o father_v this_o monstrous_a mooncalf_n be_v k._n and_o the_o man_n be_v note_v among_o his_o companion_n for_o a_o great_a quareller_n about_o his_o commons_o the_o poor_a fellow_n be_v but_o a_o kettle_n doctor_n or_o rather_o a_o tinker_n of_o break_a school_n distinction_n and_o a_o professor_n rather_o than_o a_o performer_n of_o any_o divine_a learning_n the_o fellow_n talk_v idle_o of_o new_a religion_n but_o neither_o do_v he_o know_v what_o be_v new_a nor_o what_o be_v old_a nor_o what_o belong_v to_o religion_n that_o take_v popery_n for_o religion_n and_o esteem_v the_o mass_n and_o decretalive_a doctrine_n which_o this_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v to_o be_v ancient_a and_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o be_v new_a the_o four_o be_v term_v a_o brief_a and_o clear_a confutation_n of_o a_o new_a vain_a and_o vaunt_a challenge_n and_o be_v direct_v against_o a_o treatise_n set_v out_o some_o two_o or_o three_o year_n ago_o by_o i_o wherein_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o masspriest_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v neither_o catholic_n nor_o good_a christian_n but_o so_o learned_o and_o wise_o have_v the_o author_n of_o this_o braggart_n confutation_n handle_v the_o matter_n that_o his_o good_a friend_n be_v sorry_a to_o see_v so_o worthy_a a_o work_n misname_v for_o if_o he_o have_v do_v i_o right_n he_o shall_v have_v call_v his_o pamphlet_n a_o confirmation_n of_o my_o challenge_n for_o so_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o author_n answer_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o rather_o by_o silence_n consent_v then_o by_o good_a answer_v contradict_a our_o argument_n the_o most_o of_o his_o discourse_n stand_v upon_o bitter_a rail_n vain_a talk_n and_o childish_a trifle_n about_o serious_a matter_n if_o any_o man_n doubt_v whether_o popery_n be_v heresy_n before_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o this_o weak_a discourse_n that_o yield_v no_o satisfaction_n to_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v resolve_v he_o the_o author_n of_o this_o devise_n as_o we_o be_v credible_o inform_v be_v walpoole_n the_o ruler_n of_o the_o kitchen_n or_o porridge_n pot_n of_o the_o college_n of_o young_a english_a popish_a traitor_n in_o rome_n in_o italian_a they_o call_v he_o padre_n ministro_fw-la or_o padre_n de_fw-fr minestra_fw-es or_o lord_n chief_a steward_n of_o the_o scholar_n porridge_n the_o same_o man_n be_v that_o walpoole_n that_o give_v poison_n to_o squire_n and_o corrupt_v he_o by_o promise_n of_o great_a reward_n both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v if_o he_o will_v undertake_v to_o empoyson_v queen_n elizabeth_n &_o the_o late_a earl_n of_o essex_n and_o have_v gain_v a_o promise_n at_o his_o hand_n swear_v he_o upon_o the_o sacrament_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o the_o fellow_n be_v record_v in_o public_a act_n book_n for_o these_o infamous_a stratagem_n and_o know_v to_o be_v a_o notorious_a traitor_n and_o a_o atheist_n we_o be_v not_o therefore_o much_o to_o marvel_v if_o this_o wicked_a jebusite_n libel_n be_v full_a of_o bitterness_n atheism_n and_o poison_n proceed_v from_o so_o impious_a a_o atheist_n and_o so_o cunning_a a_o master_n in_o the_o art_n of_o empoison_v if_o any_o thing_n want_v in_o walpool_n who_o wit_n be_v gross_a &_o muddy_a like_o a_o stand_a pool_n or_o sink_v of_o villainy_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o bountiful_o supply_v by_o robert_n parson_n the_o rector_n of_o the_o choir_n of_o romish_a conspirator_n you_o may_v then_o imagine_v what_o a_o load_n of_o leasing_n calumniation_n and_o foolery_n such_o two_o coach_n horse_n be_v able_a to_o draw_v out_o of_o their_o miry_a invention_n much_o be_v the_o simple_a papist_n to_o be_v pity_v that_o listen_v to_o such_o wicked_a traitor_n and_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v abuse_v by_o such_o notorious_a and_o infamous_a impostor_n unto_o all_o these_o libel_n there_o be_v several_a answer_n in_o make_v if_o they_o be_v not_o present_o answer_v marvel_v not_o they_o be_v of_o too_o large_a a_o block_n to_o be_v read_v over_o hasty_o my_o countryman_n think_v if_o the_o whole_a impression_n of_o these_o four_o book_n may_v be_v have_v that_o they_o will_v well_o serve_v to_o pave_v shaftsbury_n causy_a there_o will_v only_o be_v this_o difference_n that_o for_o cobble_v stone_n and_o rough_a slate_n we_o shall_v have_v cobble_v book_n and_o rough_a hew_v libel_n as_o fit_a to_o be_v tread_v upon_o as_o read_v over_o other_o think_v because_o they_o be_v in_o form_n octagonall_a and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o thick_a as_o long_o make_v like_o brickbat_n that_o they_o will_v fine_o serve_v see_v the_o holy_a father_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o pope_n holy_a church_n to_o lay_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o rear_n up_o of_o the_o wall_n of_o some_o romish_a synagogue_n &_o so_o it_o will_v be_v like_o foundation_n like_o wall_n as_o soon_o as_o such_o huge_a &_o thick_a volume_n may_v be_v run_v over_o they_o shall_v god_n willing_a receive_v a_o answer_n fit_v such_o indiabolated_a author_n and_o such_o wicked_a &_o rail_a stuff_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n receive_v this_o censure_n of_o they_o al._n first_o they_o
own_o consort_n so_o we_o see_v parson_n his_o whole_a treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n easy_o subvert_v in_o three_o word_n and_o with_o the_o turn_n of_o a_o hand_n the_o second_o part_n of_o parson_n his_o treatise_n wherein_o he_o pretend_v to_o make_v search_n for_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o england_n be_v whole_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o title_n of_o three_o conversion_n so_o simple_a be_v he_o in_o his_o choice_n that_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v a_o title_n to_o fit_v his_o fantastical_a work_n beside_o that_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v blind_a that_o can_v not_o find_v our_o religion_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o long_o after_o for_o there_o be_v no_o point_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o receive_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o any_o ancient_a and_o lawful_a council_n but_o we_o receive_v it_o and_o embrace_v it_o nor_o do_v we_o profess_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o nicene_n and_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o also_o together_o with_o we_o receive_v and_o profess_v while_o therefore_o the_o lightheaded_a friar_n run_v post_v through_o all_o age_n and_o pretend_v to_o inquire_v for_o news_n of_o our_o church_n which_o he_o may_v see_v if_o he_o will_v in_o all_o place_n he_o resemble_v much_o that_o wise_a fellow_n that_o can_v not_o see_v wood_n for_o tree_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o in_o ancient_a time_n he_o find_v no_o opposition_n make_v against_o the_o pope_n primacy_n or_o universal_a power_n or_o to_o the_o mass_n or_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o carnal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o 7._o sacrament_n purgatory_n indulgence_n &_o such_o like_a for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o ridiculous_a to_o make_v search_n for_o opposition_n against_o popish_a doctrine_n &_o heresy_n before_o the_o same_o be_v extant_a in_o the_o world_n but_o as_o soon_o as_o any_o begin_v to_o challenge_v the_o name_n of_o ecumenical_a or_o universal_a bishop_n gregory_n the_o first_o challenge_v he_o for_o it_o as_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n allow_v after_o a_o sort_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a though_o not_o in_o such_o gross_a manner_n as_o now_o be_v oppugn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n in_o the_o time_n of_o charlemagne_n the_o carnal_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o believe_v by_o gregory_n the_o 7._o as_o beno_n report_v and_o be_v both_o they_o and_o afterward_o dislike_v by_o many_o transubstantiation_n be_v dispute_v against_o by_o the_o schoolman_n all_o the_o eastern_a church_n spurn_v against_o the_o pope_n headship_n his_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n neither_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o these_o corruption_n do_v the_o albigenses_n valdense_n wiclephians_n and_o bohemian_o as_o they_o be_v call_v together_o with_o diverse_a other_o cease_v to_o exclaim_v against_o these_o popish_a abuse_n but_o say_v parson_n these_o do_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n agree_v with_o us._n yet_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o wrong_v they_o and_o us._n if_o of_o ceremony_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o all_o church_n shall_v agree_v in_o all_o point_n furthermore_o if_o the_o adversary_n have_v not_o calmnious_o lay_v diverse_a imputation_n of_o heresy_n upon_o they_o which_o they_o never_o hold_v the_o variation_n will_v not_o have_v seem_v so_o great_a as_o they_o pretend_v wherefore_o if_o robert_n parson_n seek_v no_o better_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o he_o will_v find_v a_o cardinal_n hat_n which_o as_o his_o friend_n charge_v he_o he_o have_v long_o seek_v this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o which_o be_v material_a in_o robert_n parson_n his_o treatise_n of_o three_o conversion_n the_o rest_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o froth_n of_o the_o man_n fury_n and_o foolery_n and_o contain_v only_o certain_a idle_a invective_n against_o m._n fox_n that_o good_a man_n &_o against_o m._n bale_n &_o other_o honest_a christian_n together_o with_o certain_a fond_a tale_n of_o king_n alphred_n dream_n &_o s._n cutberts_n apparition_n &_o such_o like_a wooden_a &_o popish_a stuff_n draw_v out_o of_o lie_a legend_n he_o forget_v not_o also_o to_o rail_v against_o our_o noble_a queen_n late_o decease_v and_o to_o call_v her_o old_a persecutor_n and_o to_o lay_v a_o aspersion_n of_o slander_n upon_o the_o state_n as_o if_o the_o same_o do_v persecute_v papist_n for_o religion_n a_o matter_n of_o which_o the_o secular_a masspriest_n be_v ashamed_a and_o stick_v not_o to_o clear_v those_o who_o this_o convertible_a proteus_n most_o unjust_o charge_v final_o his_o fardel_n of_o waste_a paper_n contain_v diverse_a corruption_n and_o depravation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n miss-allegation_n of_o father_n weak_a collection_n gross_a error_n rebellious_a position_n notorious_a lie_n and_o calumiation_n which_o in_o a_o large_a treatise_n hereafter_o be_v to_o be_v discover_v k._n kellison_n survey_v if_o any_o man_n listen_v to_o survey_v and_o peruse_v a_o certain_a slanderous_a and_o rail_a companion_n libel_v entitle_v caluinoturcismus_n and_o with_o hatred_n more_o than_o turkish_n to_o christian_n religion_n set_v out_o by_o gifford_n of_o lile_n will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v whole_o steal_v out_o from_o thence_o albeit_o he_o yield_v no_o thanks_o to_o those_o from_o whence_o he_o borrow_v or_o rather_o steal_v his_o invention_n this_o plagiary_n therefore_o need_v no_o other_o answer_n then_o that_o which_o be_v already_o make_v to_o giffords_n turkey_n work_v call_v caluinoturcismus_n it_o seem_v the_o man_n be_v at_o a_o stand_n for_o albeit_o gifford_n hate_v religion_n like_o a_o turk_n yet_o he_o answer_v no_o more_o then_o if_o by_o virtue_n of_o parson_n his_o three_o conversion_n he_o be_v turn_v into_o a_o mute_a turbot_n this_o k._n also_o of_o his_o own_o have_v add_v a_o gloze_a and_o flatter_a epistle_n to_o the_o king_n a_o certain_a preface_n concern_v inanimate_a and_o unreasonable_a creature_n percase_o like_o the_o arcadian_a beast_n of_o douai_n and_o certain_a fragment_n &_o old_a end_n of_o diverse_a stale_a declamation_n make_v as_o it_o seem_v at_o the_o drink_n out_o of_o a_o pot_n of_o rhenish_a wine_n his_o scholar_n i_o hear_v gape_v and_o wonder_v at_o his_o horrible_a eloquence_n but_o yet_o the_o wise_a of_o they_o see_v that_o they_o have_v no_o affinity_n with_o his_o purpose_n and_o only_o serve_v to_o fringe_n his_o chapter_n like_v as_o musty_a end_n of_o mockado_n serve_v to_o stitch_v his_o jacket_n of_o perpetuana_n all_o the_o whole_a amount_v to_o nothing_o save_v to_o declare_v the_o man_n to_o be_v a_o perpetual_a railer_n and_o a_o most_o sottish_a declaimer_n the_o idle_a fellow_n in_o all_o his_o scurvy_a collection_n which_o he_o like_v a_o surveyor_n without_o commission_n have_v make_v to_o little_a purpose_n do_v neither_o show_n wisdom_n nor_o modesty_n nor_o learning_n if_o the_o fellow_n have_v be_v wise_a he_o will_v not_o have_v touch_v any_o matter_n of_o novelty_n or_o absurdity_n for_o therein_o he_o give_v his_o adversary_n just_a occasion_n not_o only_o to_o justify_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o consonant_a to_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o to_o declare_v his_o popish_a religion_n refuse_v by_o we_o to_o be_v a_o pack_n of_o novelty_n and_o a_o mass_n of_o gross_a absurdity_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n consist_v of_o a_o triple-crowned_n and_o crosse-slippard_a pope_n with_o his_o guard_n of_o suizzer_n a_o consistory_n of_o purple_a cardinal_n that_o have_v near_o affinity_n to_o the_o purple_a whore_n of_o babylon_n a_o rabble_n of_o rakehellike_a masspriest_n filthy_a monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n with_o a_o people_n worship_v idol_n and_o beléeve_v the_o decretalive_a doctrine_n of_o pope_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o trent_n be_v new_a and_o never_o see_v before_o until_o of_o late_a who_o do_v not_o understand_v that_o both_o the_o ground_n of_o popery_n &_o the_o doctrine_n thereon_o build_v be_v new_a for_o neither_o can_v k._n show_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o decretal_n or_o upon_o tradition_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o the_o church_n be_v tie_v to_o such_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n allow_v or_o bind_v to_o follow_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n neither_o can_v he_o prove_v either_o out_o of_o father_n or_o ancient_a writer_n that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o every_o pix_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n or_o that_o his_o body_n